Selected quad for the lemma: sin_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
sin_n body_n death_n separation_n 3,748 5 10.7337 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A75460 The comfort of the soul laid down by way of meditation upon some heads of Christian religion, very profitable for every true Christian. Composed and written by Iohn Anthony of London Doctor of Physick. Anthony, John, 1585-1655. 1654 (1654) Wing A3479; Thomason E739_1; ESTC R207006 271,347 376

There are 26 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

shall_v he_o have_v learn_v by_o his_o own_o experience_n what_o we_o suffer_v when_o we_o be_v under_o the_o cross_n that_o he_o may_v pity_v we_o this_o may_v teach_v we_o to_o bear_v patient_o whatsoever_o god_n do_v lay_v upon_o we_o though_o the_o instrument_n that_o he_o use_v be_v our_o deadly_a foe_n because_o it_o be_v his_o will_n and_o pleasure_n to_o have_v it_o so_o 1●_n so_o 2_o sam._n 16._o 1●_n thus_o do_v david_n meek_o bear_v the_o curse_v of_o shim●i_n and_o will_v not_o suffer_v abishai_n to_o kill_v he_o because_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n will_v it_o shall_v be_v so_o this_o meditation_n will_v great_o comfort_v our_o faint_a spirit_n when_o we_o be_v under_o any_o strong_a temptation_n or_o worldly_a misery_n that_o no_o enemy_n be_v he_o never_o so_o powerful_a or_o his_o heart_n never_o so_o malicious_a can_v imagine_v more_o against_o we_o in_o his_o wicked_a thought_n or_o act_v more_o with_o his_o cruel_a hand_n than_o divine_a providence_n have_v appoint_v also_o no_o calamity_n pain_n or_o sickness_n can_v afflict_v we_o without_o his_o will_n no_o peril_n or_o danger_n can_v come_v near_o we_o without_o his_o permission_n and_o we_o shall_v suffer_v no_o more_o under_o any_o cross_n than_o god_n in_o his_o wisdom_n know_v to_o to_o be_v profitable_a for_o we_o if_o we_o be_v thus_o persuade_v it_o will_v great_o comfort_v we_o in_o all_o our_o suffering_n and_o keep_v we_o from_o murmur_v and_o repine_v when_o god_n visitation_n be_v upon_o we_o wherefore_o let_v no_o fear_n of_o danger_n cast_v down_o our_o hope_n let_v no_o storm_n of_o persecution_n shake_v the_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o let_v no_o wave_n of_o affliction_n quench_v the_o flame_n of_o our_o love_n or_o abate_v the_o zeal_n of_o our_o affection_n to_o our_o dear_a saviour_n who_o spare_v not_o his_o own_o life_n for_o we_o but_o pour_v out_o his_o very_a heart_n blood_n for_o our_o justification_n and_o salvation_n if_o the_o strength_n of_o grace_n that_o be_v in_o we_o be_v not_o answerable_a to_o what_o we_o suffer_v or_o to_o the_o power_n of_o our_o corruption_n christ_n will_v either_o take_v off_o some_o part_n of_o our_o burden_n or_o give_v we_o more_o strength_n to_o bear_v it_o and_o he_o will_v also_o make_v we_o able_a by_o degree_n to_o overcome_v our_o corruption_n that_o we_o may_v live_v a_o sanctify_a life_n to_o the_o lord_n and_o then_o let_v death_n come_v how_o or_o when_o it_o will_v we_o shall_v die_v in_o the_o lord_n which_o will_v be_v great_a gain_n and_o advantage_n to_o we_o now_o let_v the_o meditation_n of_o thy_o heart_n be_v fix_v upon_o the_o death_n of_o thy_o precious_a saviour_n that_o from_o thence_o thou_o may_v draw_v virtue_n and_o power_n by_o faith_n to_o mortify_v and_o kill_v the_o body_n of_o sin_n that_o by_o nature_n be_v in_o thou_o &_o also_o to_o have_v a_o firm_a assurance_n that_o he_o have_v reconcile_v thou_o to_o god_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n why_o then_o do_v thou_o cherish_v any_o sin_n to_o crucify_v thy_o redeemer_n afresh_o what_o be_v this_o that_o thou_o do_v when_o thou_o delight_v in_o swear_v in_o uncleanness_n in_o drunkenness_n and_o the_o like_a why_o do_v thou_o delay_v thy_o turn_n unto_o god_n why_o do_v thou_o thus_o endanger_v the_o salvation_n of_o thy_o soul_n oh_o think_v upon_o the_o iniquity_n of_o thy_o sin_n with_o hatred_n and_o detestation_n which_o have_v put_v to_o death_n thy_o gracious_a redeemer_n think_v upon_o thy_o sin_n with_o godly_a sorrow_n and_o true_a compunction_n of_o heart_n which_o do_v so_o separate_v thou_o from_o thy_o god_n that_o nothing_o can_v restore_v thou_o into_o his_o grace_n and_o favour_n but_o the_o death_n of_o his_o eternal_a son_n wherefore_o seek_v earnest_o by_o faithful_a prayer_n to_o thy_o sweet_a saviour_n that_o thou_o may_v find_v the_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o his_o death_n in_o the_o crucify_a of_o all_o the_o several_a member_n of_o this_o body_n of_o sin_n that_o by_o nature_n be_v inherent_a in_o thou_o that_o so_o thy_o corruption_n may_v be_v weaken_v and_o thou_o may_v be_v daily_o renew_v by_o the_o strength_n of_o that_o sanctify_a grace_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v wrought_v in_o thou_o consider_v now_o in_o the_o last_o place_n how_o rigorous_o god_n do_v deal_v with_o his_o only_a son_n throughout_o his_o whole_a passion_n he_o give_v he_o no_o intermission_n in_o his_o suffering_n but_o as_o soon_o as_o one_o sorrow_n be_v past_a another_o present_o come_v in_o the_o place_n when_o one_o pain_n be_v over_o a_o great_a be_v ready_a to_o supply_v the_o room_n 4._o room_n psal_n 102._o 4._o his_o heart_n be_v smite_v and_o wither_v like_o grass_n so_o that_o he_o forget_v to_o eat_v his_o bread_n his_o torturing_n come_v so_o fast_o upon_o he_o that_o he_o have_v no_o time_n to_o refresh_v himself_o with_o bread_n or_o water_n but_o above_o all_o god_n fury_n be_v upon_o he_o in_o all_o his_o suffering_n which_o make_v his_o passion_n beyond_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n god_n never_o deal_v thus_o with_o any_o of_o his_o servant_n but_o still_o they_o have_v some_o intermission_n in_o their_o affliction_n some_o comfort_n in_o their_o sorrow_n and_o some_o heavenly_a consolation_n to_o uphold_v their_o spirit_n or_o else_o a_o joyful_a deliverance_n out_o of_o they_o joseph_n have_v his_o affliction_n and_o yet_o at_o length_n god_n advance_v he_o to_o great_a honour_n job_n affliction_n come_v upon_o he_o as_o fast_o as_o one_o messenger_n can_v follow_v another_o at_o last_o misery_n seize_v upon_o his_o own_o body_n but_o in_o the_o end_n god_n give_v he_o double_a as_o much_o as_o he_o take_v from_o he_o so_o likewise_o david_n and_o many_o more_o have_v suffer_v very_o great_a affliction_n and_o torment_n but_o none_o like_o unto_o christ_n who_o passion_n continue_v to_o his_o heath_n 11._o heath_n 2_o cor._n 11._o paul_n be_v above_o measure_n afflict_v persecute_v and_o torment_v for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o at_o last_o he_o die_v by_o the_o sword_n but_o all_o this_o while_n he_o have_v christ_n to_o support_v he_o with_o many_o spiritual_a consolation_n wherefore_o howsoever_o god_n be_v please_v to_o deal_v with_o we_o in_o this_o life_n it_o will_v be_v in_o mercy_n and_o in_o judgement_n for_o our_o good_a and_o not_o in_o fury_n or_o in_o the_o rigour_n of_o his_o justice_n for_o our_o confusion_n and_o he_o will_v bountiful_o reward_v we_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v if_o we_o hold_v out_o constant_a to_o the_o end_n what_o happen_v at_o christ_n death_n when_o the_o soul_n of_o our_o bless_a redeemer_n be_v dissolve_v and_o separate_v from_o his_o breathless_a body_n 51._o body_n mat._n 27._o 51._o the_o vail_n of_o the_o temple_n be_v rend_v in_o twain_o from_o the_o top_n to_o the_o bottom_n the_o earth_n do_v quake_v the_o rock_n rend_v the_o grave_n be_v open_v and_o many_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n which_o sleep_v arise_v and_o come_v out_o of_o their_o grave_n after_o his_o resurrection_n god_n do_v show_v these_o strange_a sign_n and_o wonder_n at_o the_o death_n of_o his_o son_n as_o forerunner_n of_o the_o fearful_a judgement_n that_o soon_o after_o shall_v come_v upon_o that_o renown_a city_n and_o upon_o the_o whole_a nation_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o so_o strike_v terror_n into_o their_o heart_n for_o their_o odious_a and_o detestable_a sin_n in_o crucify_a the_o lord_n of_o glory_n if_o by_o any_o mean_n they_o can_v be_v make_v sensible_a of_o their_o sin_n that_o they_o may_v repent_v and_o turn_v to_o the_o lord_n that_o so_o god_n may_v turn_v away_o his_o judgement_n and_o have_v mercy_n on_o they_o this_o have_v be_v god_n usual_a course_n to_o give_v warning_n before_o he_o strike_v to_o threaten_v before_o the_o judgement_n come_v and_o nothing_o but_o repentance_n can_v stay_v god_n hand_n 29._o hand_n 1_o kin._n 21._o 29._o ahabs_n outward_a form_n of_o humiliation_n keep_v off_o the_o judgement_n from_o himself_o that_o god_n have_v denounce_v against_o his_o house_n by_o his_o prophet_n the_o ninivites_n repent_v at_o the_o preach_a of_o jovah_n and_o therefore_o god_n bring_v not_o the_o evil_a upon_o they_o which_o he_o threaten_v against_o that_o great_a city_n but_o the_o house_n of_o juda_n will_v not_o repent_v though_o god_n send_v his_o prophet_n to_o they_o early_o and_o late_o and_o therefore_o they_o be_v carry_v away_o captive_n into_o babylon_n thus_o do_v god_n in_o great_a mercy_n give_v warning_n before_o he_o do_v visit_v a_o nation_n or_o a_o people_n in_o his_o wrath_n that_o they_o shall_v prevent_v the_o judgement_n by_o their_o repentance_n first_o god_n do_v show_v by_o the_o rent_v of_o the_o vail_n of_o the_o temple_n that_o the_o partition_n wall_n be_v
christ_n shall_v be_v receive_v up_o to_o eternal_a glory_n the_o saint_n that_o then_o arise_v out_o of_o their_o grave_n be_v forerunner_n of_o this_o general_a resurrection_n this_o be_v a_o dreadful_a sign_n to_o the_o cruel_a jew_n who_o have_v embrue_v their_o hand_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o same_o jesus_n who_o they_o crucify_v shall_v be_v the_o supreme_a judge_n at_o that_o day_n before_o who_o they_o must_v appear_v to_o answer_v for_o this_o their_o bloody_a fact_n it_o may_v also_o be_v a_o terrible_a warning_n to_o all_o wicked_a man_n that_o be_v defile_v with_o innocent_a blood_n and_o that_o live_v in_o profaneness_n and_o sensuality_n fulfil_v their_o sinful_a lust_n without_o any_o remorse_n of_o conscience_n or_o holy_a desire_n to_o be_v reclaim_v from_o their_o wicked_a way_n and_o without_o any_o care_n to_o make_v their_o peace_n with_o god_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o by_o true_a repentance_n for_o a_o time_n will_v come_v when_o they_o must_v answer_v the_o rigour_n of_o god_n justice_n for_o all_o their_o cry_a sin_n and_o heinous_a abomination_n wherefore_o enter_v into_o a_o serious_a consideration_n with_o thyself_o how_o thou_o be_v prepare_v and_o fit_v for_o thy_o grave_n if_o thou_o have_v live_v to_o the_o world_n to_o the_o flesh_n to_o the_o devil_n or_o to_o thyself_o thou_o be_v in_o a_o sad_a and_o lamentable_a condition_n for_o the_o grave_n can_v keep_v thou_o from_o judgement_n but_o must_v open_v her_o mouth_n 10_o mouth_n jona_n 2_o 10_o like_o jonahs_n whale_n at_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o last_o trumpet_n and_o it_o will_v deliver_v thou_o up_o even_o as_o it_o sound_v thou_o if_o thy_o grave_n receive_v thou_o a_o hypocrite_n a_o blasphemer_n a_o swearer_n a_o unclean_a person_n or_o the_o like_a it_o will_v deliver_v thou_o up_o to_o judgement_n all_o pollute_a with_o the_o guilt_n and_o filth_n of_o the_o same_o sin_n 11_o sin_n job_n 20._o 11_o if_o thy_o bone_n be_v full_a of_o the_o sin_n of_o thy_o youth_n they_o will_v lie_v down_o with_o thou_o in_o the_o dust_n and_o they_o will_v cleave_v fast_o to_o thou_o when_o thou_o shall_v rise_v again_o how_o can_v thou_o then_o stand_v before_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o god_n and_o before_o all_o his_o glorious_a angel_n and_o bless_a saint_n if_o thou_o be_v in_o this_o sinful_a condition_n and_o how_o can_v thou_o endure_v the_o rigour_n of_o his_o justice_n and_o the_o severity_n of_o his_o judgement_n if_o this_o consideration_n be_v well_o imprint_v in_o thy_o heart_n it_o will_v make_v thou_o afraid_a to_o go_v on_o in_o a_o way_n of_o sin_n without_o repentance_n but_o such_o as_o have_v live_v to_o the_o lord_n shall_v die_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o shall_v sleep_v quiet_o in_o their_o grave_n as_o in_o their_o bed_n 17._o bed_n mal._n 3._o 17._o for_o they_o be_v the_o lord_n jewel_n and_o he_o keep_v they_o in_o these_o cabinet_n until_o the_o day_n that_o he_o shall_v make_v up_o his_o jewel_n wherefore_o if_o we_o have_v any_o interest_n in_o christ_n by_o faith_n his_o blood_n will_v cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o our_o sin_n his_o righteousness_n will_v make_v we_o accept_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o he_o will_v account_v we_o as_o his_o jewel_n and_o then_o christ_n will_v sanctify_v the_o grave_n to_o we_o ●_o we_o isa_n 57_o ●_o we_o shall_v enter_v into_o peace_n we_o shall_v rest_v in_o our_o bed_n walk_v in_o his_o righteousness_n thus_o comfortable_o shall_v we_o enter_v into_o the_o grave_n if_o we_o have_v a_o holy_a assurance_n by_o the_o witness_n of_o his_o spirit_n to_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o then_o our_o resurrection_n will_v be_v with_o unspeakable_a joy_n and_o comfort_n to_o we_o of_o the_o burial_n of_o christ_n though_o christ_n die_v a_o most_o shameful_a and_o ignominious_a death_n yet_o he_o have_v honourable_a burial_n according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o jew_n 41._o jew_n john_n 19_o 40_o 41._o for_o joseph_n of_o arimathea_n and_o nicodemus_n two_o honourable_a man_n among_o the_o jew_n beg_v leave_v of_o pilate_n and_o take_v down_o his_o body_n from_o the_o cross_n and_o wrap_v it_o in_o linen_n clothes_n with_o spice_n and_o lay_v it_o in_o a_o new_a sepulchre_n which_o be_v hew_v out_o in_o a_o rock_n wherein_o be_v never_o man_n yet_o lay_v and_o they_o roll_v a_o great_a stone_n to_o the_o door_n of_o the_o sepulchre_n but_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o pharisee_n think_v he_o not_o safe_a enough_o and_o therefore_o to_o prevent_v his_o resurrection_n as_o they_o think_v 65._o think_v mat._n 27._o 64_o 65._o they_o get_v leave_v of_o pilate_n to_o make_v the_o sepulchre_n sure_a then_o they_o seal_v the_o stone_n and_o set_v a_o watch_n about_o the_o sepulchre_n yet_o notwithstanding_o at_o god_n appoint_v time_n he_o do_v rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o deity_n which_o be_v not_o separate_v from_o his_o humane_a nature_n though_o he_o be_v now_o dead_a 10._o dead_a psal_n 16._o 10._o for_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v his_o holy_a one_o to_o see_v corruption_n 44._o corruption_n 1_o cor._n 15._o 44._o and_o his_o natural_a body_n be_v raise_v up_o a_o spiritual_a and_o glorify_a body_n but_o what_o comfort_n can_v we_o draw_v from_o christ_n now_o he_o be_v dead_a can_v we_o have_v any_o benefit_n by_o he_o as_o he_o be_v now_o bury_v it_o be_v true_a which_o christ_n say_v 63_o say_v john_n 6._o 63_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o quicken_v the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o though_o we_o can_v draw_v no_o comfort_n from_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v now_o in_o the_o grave_n yet_o by_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n which_o ever_o live_v we_o may_v receive_v great_a benefit_n and_o much_o spiritual_a consolation_n by_o the_o death_n &_o burial_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n for_o by_o faith_n we_o may_v draw_v virtue_n and_o power_n from_o thence_o to_o kill_v that_o body_n of_o sin_n which_o by_o nature_n be_v in_o we_o and_o to_o bury_v it_o with_o christ_n that_o the_o new_a man_n of_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n may_v be_v quicken_v and_o raise_v up_o in_o we_o for_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o mort●fie_v and_o kill_v this_o body_n of_o sin_n but_o we_o must_v also_o bury_v it_o and_o every_o member_n of_o it_o with_o christ_n that_o no_o sin_n though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o profitable_a or_o please_a to_o our_o nature_n may_v gather_v strength_n to_o overpower_v we_o or_o to_o bring_v we_o again_o into_o subjection_n that_o ●very_n base_a lust_n shall_v reign_v over_o we_o to_o make_v we_o slave_n unto_o sin_n it_o be_v true_a that_o sin_n will_v still_o dwell_v in_o we_o but_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n will_v make_v we_o able_a by_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o death_n so_o to_o kill_v the_o power_n of_o it_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o have_v dominion_n over_o we_o grace_n work_v our_o sanctification_n by_o degree_n and_o we_o can_v expect_v perfection_n of_o holiness_n until_o we_o come_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n now_o if_o we_o will_v bury_v our_o sin_n in_o the_o sepulchre_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n we_o must_v not_o only_o forbear_v the_o actual_a commit_n of_o sin_n but_o we_o must_v quite_o loose_v the_o delightful_a remembrance_n of_o it_o for_o if_o we_o do_v still_o retain_v with_o approbation_n a_o sinful_a remembrance_n of_o our_o former_a sin_n we_o do_v then_o keep_v they_o above_o ground_n and_o unbury_v and_o they_o will_v be_v odious_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n though_o the_o act_n of_o sin_n be_v mortify_v in_o we_o 5._o we_o rom._n 6._o 3_o 4_o 5._o if_o we_o be_v baptize_v into_o jesus_n christ_n we_o be_v baptize_v into_o his_o death_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v bury_v with_o he_o by_o baptism_n into_o death_n that_o the_o body_n of_o sin_n may_v be_v destroy_v that_o henceforth_o we_o shall_v not_o serve_v sin_n but_o shall_v walk_v in_o newness_n of_o life_n if_o we_o be_v thus_o bury_v with_o christ_n than_o the_o sweet_a perfume_n and_o precious_a odour_n of_o his_o merit_n will_v take_v away_o the_o stench_n and_o noisomeness_n of_o our_o sin_n from_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n wherefore_o by_o faith_n we_o shall_v draw_v a_o new_a principle_n of_o grace_n from_o christ_n to_o be_v crucify_v with_o he_o to_o live_v and_o die_v in_o he_o to_o be_v bury_v with_o he_o both_o in_o the_o act_n and_o in_o the_o delight_n of_o sin_n 1._o sin_n col._n 3._o 1._o and_o to_o rise_v again_o with_o he_o in_o a_o holy_a and_o sanctify_a life_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v continual_o with_o he_o to_o have_v our_o communion_n and_o fellowship_n with_o he_o for_o every_o member_n of_o his_o mystical_a body_n will_v be_v where_o he_o be_v in_o
up_o thy_o spirit_n thou_o faint_a soul_n for_o christ_n have_v redeem_v thy_o body_n from_o the_o grave_n and_o thy_o soul_n from_o death_n by_o his_o resurrection_n he_o have_v conquer_v all_o the_o enemy_n of_o thy_o salvation_n sin_n have_v no_o condemn_a power_n over_o thou_o death_n be_v advantage_n to_o thou_o hell_n be_v lock_v up_o from_o thou_o and_o the_o devil_n himself_o can_v go_v beyond_o his_o commission_n for_o thy_o hurt_n though_o the_o world_n do_v frown_v upon_o thou_o 33_o thou_o joh._n 16._o 33_o and_o thou_o find_v tribulation_n here_o yet_o be_v of_o good_a cheer_n and_o lift_v up_o thy_o head_n for_o christ_n have_v overcome_v the_o world_n and_o he_o will_v sanctify_v all_o thy_o tribulation_n to_o thou_o thou_o live_v here_o subject_a to_o shame_n and_o reproach_n to_o disease_n of_o body_n and_o sorrow_n of_o spirit_n and_o to_o all_o misery_n and_o calamity_n but_o death_n will_v put_v a_o end_n to_o all_o thy_o labour_n and_o travel_n the_o grave_n will_v refine_v thy_o body_n from_o all_o imperfection_n and_o disease_n and_o thy_o resurrection_n will_v bring_v thou_o to_o thy_o reward_n which_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o thou_o in_o heaven_n if_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n set_v themselves_o in_o array_n against_o thou_o if_o the_o terror_n of_o death_n assault_v thou_o fear_v not_o but_o keep_v close_o to_o the_o resurrection_n of_o thy_o saviour_n by_o faith_n he_o have_v overcome_v they_o all_o and_o will_v also_o subdue_v they_o unto_o thou_o 30._o thou_o eph_n ●_o 30._o if_o thou_o be_v a_o member_n of_o his_o body_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o of_o his_o bone_n thou_o must_v be_v make_v conformable_a to_o he_o as_o to_o thy_o head_n as_o well_o in_o his_o glory_n as_o in_o his_o shame_n as_o well_o in_o his_o resurrection_n as_o in_o his_o death_n and_o burial_n if_o the_o cross_n must_v try_v thy_o strength_n he_o will_v not_o tire_v thou_o with_o a_o great_a burden_n than_o thou_o be_v well_o able_a to_o bear_v if_o pain_n or_o sickness_n bring_v thou_o near_o unto_o death_n the_o faithful_a hope_n of_o a_o joyful_a resurrection_n will_v great_o refresh_v and_o comfort_v thy_o soul_n for_o though_o thy_o soul_n must_v be_v part_v from_o thy_o body_n yet_o neither_o thy_o soul_n nor_o thy_o body_n shall_v be_v part_v fuom_n christ_n but_o thou_o shall_v rise_v again_o out_o of_o the_o dust_n with_o a_o spiritual_a and_o immortal_a body_n to_o be_v join_v unto_o christ_n thy_o head_n for_o ever_o now_o think_v on_o these_o thing_n with_o holy_a affection_n and_o they_o will_v minister_v heavenly_a comfort_n to_o thy_o soul_n when_o thou_o be_v in_o any_o perplexity_n of_o mind_n or_o body_n consider_v now_o to_o who_o christ_n appear_v after_o his_o resurrection_n it_o be_v first_o to_o holy_a woman_n who_o in_o their_o pious_a devotion_n and_o love_n to_o he_o come_v to_o embalm_v his_o body_n with_o spice_n and_o sweet_a odour_n then_o he_o appear_v to_o his_o disciple_n at_o sundry_a time_n and_o also_o to_o many_o brethren_n that_o they_o all_o may_v be_v well_o confirm_v in_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o of_o his_o deity_n to_o comfort_v they_o in_o their_o sorrow_n to_o uphold_v they_o in_o their_o suffering_n to_o strengthen_v their_o faith_n against_o all_o persecution_n and_o bloody_a trial_n and_o to_o be_v able_a to_o strengthen_v other_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n thus_o do_v the_o holy_a apostle_n testfiie_v that_o they_o have_v see_v the_o lord_n jesus_n after_o he_o be_v rise_v to_o confirm_v their_o doctrine_n of_o his_o resurrection_n but_o christ_n do_v not_o appear_v to_o any_o wicked_a or_o ungodly_a man_n for_o they_o can_v neither_o believe_v it_o nor_o understand_v it_o nor_o receive_v any_o comfort_n or_o benefit_n by_o it_o because_o they_o have_v no_o spiritual_a eye_n to_o discern_v his_o glorify_a body_n but_o chief_o because_o they_o have_v no_o relation_n to_o he_o as_o their_o saviour_n christ_n do_v appear_v to_o we_o at_o this_o day_n by_o his_o spirit_n when_o he_o do_v manifest_a to_o we_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o resurrection_n by_o his_o word_n and_o do_v give_v we_o grace_n to_o apply_v it_o to_o ourselves_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o body_n at_o the_o last_o day_n but_o chief_o christ_n do_v appear_v to_o we_o when_o by_o faith_n we_o draw_v virtue_n and_o power_n from_o his_o resurrection_n to_o rise_v from_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n to_o the_o life_n of_o grace_n when_o we_o can_v raise_v up_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n from_o earthly_a and_o worldly_a care_n to_o heavenly_a contemplation_n and_o when_o we_o can_v with_o the_o wing_n of_o faith_n mount_v up_o above_o the_o sinful_a delight_n and_o pleasure_n of_o this_o life_n and_o above_o all_o the_o calamity_n and_o tribulation_n that_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o here_o upon_o earth_n to_o have_v our_o conversation_n in_o heaven_n and_o can_v draw_v comfort_n to_o ourselves_o in_o all_o our_o sorrow_n and_o misery_n from_o the_o hope_n of_o our_o resurrection_n there_o will_v also_o be_v a_o day_n of_o resurrection_n to_o the_o wicked_a which_o will_v be_v most_o sad_a woeful_a and_o miserable_a to_o they_o for_o they_o shall_v not_o rise_v with_o purify_a and_o glorify_a body_n but_o with_o filthy_a ugly_a and_o unclean_a body_n all_o besmear_v with_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n which_o will_v make_v they_o odious_a to_o look_v upon_o and_o they_o have_v no_o cover_n to_o hide_v their_o sin_n but_o only_o the_o devil_n liverey_n which_o be_v a_o guilty_a conscience_n that_o they_o may_v be_v know_v to_o who_o they_o belong_v for_o there_o be_v no_o place_n and_o no_o inheritance_n in_o heaven_n for_o such_o unclean_a monster_n but_o they_o shall_v be_v thrust_v down_o into_o the_o low_a hell_n to_o partake_v with_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n in_o their_o everlasting_a torment_n which_o be_v the_o reward_n of_o all_o wicked_a man_n for_o their_o evil_a work_n of_o christ_n ascension_n up_o into_o heaven_n when_o christ_n have_v full_o instruct_v his_o apostle_n after_o his_o resurrection_n in_o those_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o have_v teach_v they_o how_o to_o plant_v his_o church_n here_o upon_o earth_n he_o be_v take_v up_o in_o the_o sight_n and_o view_v of_o they_o all_o and_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n where_o he_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n in_o fullness_n of_o majesty_n and_o glory_n until_o he_o shall_v come_v again_o to_o judge_v both_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a whereby_o christ_n be_v now_o become_v our_o eternal_a advocate_n with_o the_o father_n to_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o and_o he_o be_v also_o our_o eternal_a high_a priest_n to_o present_v our_o prayer_n and_o oblation_n to_o god_n at_o his_o ascension_n he_o carry_v up_o our_o humane_a nature_n with_o he_o into_o heaven_n and_o have_v advance_v it_o above_o the_o angel_n and_o above_o all_o principality_n and_o power_n also_o christ_n have_v take_v possession_n of_o that_o heavenly_a inheritance_n which_o we_o shall_v hereafter_o enjoy_v for_o he_o keep_v it_o for_o we_o wherefore_o now_o let_v the_o thought_n of_o our_o heart_n be_v raise_v up_o in_o our_o holy_a meditation_n to_o contemplate_v the_o transcendent_a glory_n of_o christ_n now_o he_o be_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n that_o we_o may_v firm_o confide_v in_o he_o and_o have_v a_o long_a desire_n to_o be_v with_o he_o to_o enjoy_v that_o place_n of_o true_a blessedness_n 2_o blessedness_n john_n 14._o 2_o which_o he_o have_v prepare_v for_o we_o in_o his_o father_n house_n also_o let_v all_o our_o prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n proceed_v from_o a_o upright_a and_o a_o believe_a heart_n that_o they_o may_v be_v such_o as_o christ_n will_v present_v to_o his_o father_n for_o we_o and_o then_o we_o may_v confident_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v gracious_o receive_v they_o here_o be_v also_o great_a comfort_n for_o we_o that_o though_o we_o sin_v daily_o through_o humane_a frailty_n or_o through_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n 2._o nature_n 1_o john_n 2._o 1_o 2._o that_o we_o have_v a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n jesus_n christ_n the_o righteous_a and_o he_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n who_o will_v intercede_v for_o we_o and_o will_v present_v the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n unto_o he_o in_o full_a satisfaction_n for_o all_o our_o sin_n whereof_o we_o may_v have_v a_o holy_a assurance_n by_o faith_n and_o true_a repentance_n if_o we_o do_v faithful_o believe_v that_o we_o have_v such_o a_o high_a priest_n and_o such_o a_o advocate_n in_o heaven_n why_o do_v we_o give_v ourselves_o liberty_n in_o sin_n to_o displease_v he_o why_o do_v we_o cherish_v any_o darling_n sin_n
they_o 5_o they_o psal_n 68_o 5_o a_o father_n of_o the_o fatherless_a and_o a_o judge_n of_o the_o widow_n be_v god_n in_o his_o holy_a habitation_n also_o god_n will_v bless_v the_o child_n if_o their_o father_n have_v live_v in_o the_o true_a fear_n of_o god_n and_o he_o will_v provide_v for_o they_o if_o death_n take_v away_o their_o parent_n and_o they_o be_v leave_v destitute_a of_o food_n and_o raiment_n but_o this_o may_v be_v a_o advantage_n even_o to_o such_o child_n because_o than_o they_o be_v immediate_o commend_v to_o the_o care_n and_o providence_n of_o god_n who_o best_o know_v how_o to_o make_v provision_n for_o they_o and_o he_o will_v neither_o be_v want_v in_o the_o trust_n that_o be_v commit_v to_o he_o neither_o will_v he_o frustrate_v the_o hope_n of_o those_o that_o rest_n and_o depend_v upon_o he_o for_o succour_v in_o time_n of_o need_n consider_v in_o the_o last_o place_n what_o the_o son_n of_o sirach_n say_v 2._o say_v eccl._n 41._o 1_o 2._o that_o as_o the_o remembrance_n of_o death_n be_v bitter_a to_o a_o man_n that_o live_v at_o rest_n in_o his_o possession_n unto_o the_o man_n that_o have_v nothing_o to_o vex_v he_o and_o that_o have_v prosperity_n in_o all_o thing_n yea_o unto_o he_o that_o be_v yet_o able_a to_o receive_v meat_n so_o the_o sentence_n of_o death_n be_v acceptable_a unto_o the_o needy_a and_o unto_o he_o who_o strength_n fail_v that_o be_v now_o in_o the_o last_o age_n and_o be_v vex_v with_o all_o thing_n and_o to_o he_o that_o despair_v and_o have_v lose_v patience_n but_o none_o can_v be_v true_o willing_a to_o die_v but_o only_o a_o true_a christian_a that_o be_v ingraft_v into_o christ_n and_o have_v a_o holy_a assurance_n that_o he_o die_v in_o the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o do_v faithful_o hope_v for_o that_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n and_o that_o heavenly_a inheritance_n which_o the_o righteous_a judge_n have_v reserve_v for_o he_o if_o we_o have_v this_o assurance_n by_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n and_o also_o a_o steadfast_a hope_n of_o salvation_n well_o ground_v upon_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v not_o be_v afraid_a to_o look_v death_n in_o the_o face_n nor_o unwilling_a to_o resign_v up_o our_o soul_n unto_o god_n before_o death_n do_v violent_o or_o sudden_o take_v they_o from_o we_o for_o christ_n have_v take_v away_o the_o evil_a that_o be_v in_o death_n and_o have_v so_o weaken_v the_o power_n of_o it_o that_o it_o can_v bereave_v our_o soul_n of_o that_o spiritual_a comfort_n and_o gain_v which_o we_o have_v by_o he_o though_o sometime_o we_o can_v feel_v it_o in_o a_o sudden_a or_o violent_a death_n neither_o can_v it_o bind_v we_o over_o unto_o judgement_n for_o nothing_o can_v dissolve_v the_o union_n that_o be_v between_o christ_n and_o our_o soul_n by_o faith_n though_o god_n shall_v take_v we_o away_o when_o we_o be_v young_a or_o in_o our_o middle_a age_n as_o he_o do_v that_o good_a king_n josiah_n yet_o it_o shall_v be_v for_o our_o great_a advantage_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o see_v the_o evil_a that_o be_v to_o come_v and_o the_o soon_o to_o enjoy_v our_o eternal_a rest_n and_o happiness_n with_o christ_n our_o advantage_n and_o gain_n by_o christ_n after_o death_n but_o the_o chief_a gain_n that_o a_o true_a believer_n have_v by_o christ_n be_v after_o death_n for_o whatsoever_o he_o gain_v by_o he_o in_o life_n or_o in_o death_n be_v to_o fit_v he_o for_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o this_o great_a gain_n and_o to_o give_v he_o some_o assurance_n of_o it_o and_o some_o taste_n how_o great_a and_o how_o comfortable_a it_o be_v we_o have_v this_o heavenly_a advantage_n by_o christ_n in_o this_o life_n but_o in_o hope_n and_o we_o can_v come_v to_o the_o full_a fruition_n of_o it_o until_o after_o death_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v find_v it_o to_o be_v so_o great_a that_o no_o tongue_n can_v express_v it_o and_o no_o heart_n can_v conceive_v it_o but_o if_o we_o due_o consider_v from_o what_o evil_n and_o misery_n we_o shall_v be_v then_o free_v and_o what_o glory_n and_o blessedness_n we_o shall_v then_o enjoy_v we_o may_v conceive_v something_o of_o this_o unspeakable_a gain_n first_o we_o shall_v be_v free_v from_o all_o the_o temptation_n and_o suggestion_n of_o the_o devil_n 9_o devil_n rev._n 12._o 9_o for_o he_o be_v cast_v out_o into_o the_o earth_n and_o all_o his_o wicked_a angel_n be_v cast_v out_o with_o he_o they_o never_o have_v any_o place_n in_o heaven_n since_o their_o fall_n though_o they_o fly_v in_o the_o air_n or_o mount_v up_o to_o the_o first_o or_o second_o region_n of_o heaven_n yet_o they_o can_v come_v into_o the_o heaven_n of_o happiness_n where_o the_o saint_n and_o angel_n of_o god_n have_v their_o habitation_n for_o heaven_n be_v not_o a_o place_n for_o such_o unclean_a spirit_n also_o in_o heaven_n we_o shall_v be_v free_v from_o all_o worldly_a temptation_n from_o all_o carnal_a delight_n and_o earthly_a vanity_n that_o may_v entice_v we_o to_o sin_n 27_o sin_n rev._n 21._o 27_o for_o there_o shall_v in_o no_o wise_n enter_v into_o it_o any_o thing_n that_o defile_v nor_o whatsoever_o work_v abomination_n or_o make_v a_o lie_n for_o as_o the_o place_n be_v most_o pure_a so_o they_o that_o come_v there_o must_v be_v pure_a and_o holy_a second_o in_o heaven_n we_o shall_v be_v free_v from_o the_o issue_n of_o temptation_n and_o that_o be_v sin_n for_o thus_o say_v the_o prophet_n 17._o prophet_n jer._n 3._o 17._o when_o the_o nation_n shall_v be_v gather_v unto_o the_o throne_n of_o the_o lord_n they_o shall_v walk_v no_o more_o after_o the_o imagination_n of_o their_o evil_a heart_n in_o this_o life_n the_o soul_n be_v purge_v and_o purify_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o all_o the_o spot_n and_o stain_n of_o sin_n be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n the_o body_n also_o be_v purify_v and_o refine_v in_o the_o grave_n by_o the_o virtue_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o burial_n and_o therefore_o 41._o therefore_o 1_o cor._n 15._o 41._o though_o it_o be_v sow_o in_o corruption_n in_o dishonour_n and_o in_o weakness_n yet_o it_o be_v raise_v in_o incorruption_n in_o glory_n and_o in_o power_n it_o be_v sow_v a_o natural_a body_n but_o it_o be_v raise_v a_o spiritual_a body_n which_o be_v subject_a to_o no_o sin_n corruption_n or_o infirmity_n which_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o sin_n and_o it_o be_v endow_v with_o perfect_a ability_n to_o glorify_v god_n together_o with_o the_o saint_n and_o angel_n in_o heaven_n so_o long_o as_o we_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n we_o can_v but_o sin_n against_o god_n but_o when_o this_o mortal_a shall_v put_v on_o immortality_n there_o will_v be_v then_o no_o more_o place_n for_o sin_n but_o our_o whole_a nature_n shall_v be_v make_v spiritural_a and_o heavenly_a this_o consideration_n shall_v make_v we_o desire_v with_o paul_n 23._o paul_n phil._n 1._o 23._o to_o be_v dissolve_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v no_o more_o sin_n against_o our_o god_n nor_o offend_v he_o with_o our_o pollution_n but_o always_o to_o sing_v praise_n and_o hallelujah_n unto_o he_o as_o the_o saint_n and_o angel_n do_v in_o heaven_n three_o we_o shall_v then_o be_v free_v from_o all_o trouble_n and_o sorrow_n from_o all_o pain_n and_o disease_n of_o body_n from_o all_o anguish_n of_o spirit_n and_o grief_n of_o hair_n 4._o hair_n rev._n 25._o 4._o for_o god_n will_v wipe_v away_o all_o tear_n from_o our_o eye_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o death_n neither_o sorrow_n nor_o cry_v neither_o shall_v there_o be_v any_o more_o pain_n for_o the_o former_a thing_n be_v pass_v away_o thus_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n free_v from_o all_o temptation_n unto_o sin_n from_o all_o sin_n and_o from_o all_o misery_n and_o sorrow_n after_o death_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o passion_n but_o carnal_a and_o unregenerate_a man_n carry_v their_o sin_n with_o they_o to_o the_o grave_n and_o death_n open_v the_o gate_n to_o their_o eternal_a torment_n in_o hell_n for_o it_o bind_v they_o over_o to_o the_o great_a and_o terrible_a day_n of_o judgement_n when_o the_o fierceness_n of_o god_n wrath_n shall_v be_v pour_v out_o upon_o they_o to_o their_o utter_a confusion_n we_o come_v now_o to_o consider_v what_o great_a honour_n and_o what_o joy_n and_o comfort_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n shall_v have_v by_o christ_n after_o death_n for_o though_o their_o life_n here_o be_v full_a of_o sorrow_n yet_o after_o death_n they_o shall_v be_v free_v from_o they_o all_o and_o they_o shall_v also_o have_v the_o fullness_n of_o all_o true_a comfort_n and_o consolation_n first_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v god_n himself_o 3._o himself_o 2_o
if_o we_o have_v a_o true_a sight_n of_o our_o own_o baseness_n that_o we_o be_v but_o as_o clay_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o potter_n or_o as_o a_o earthen_a pitcher_n which_o be_v easy_o break_v in_o piece_n we_o can_v but_o be_v afraid_a to_o draw_v near_o so_o great_a and_o glorious_a a_o majesty_n to_o contemplate_v his_o greatness_n and_o power_n the_o breath_n of_o who_o nostril_n be_v able_a to_o consume_v we_o but_o if_o we_o consider_v that_o our_o sin_n have_v lay_v we_o open_a to_o the_o rigour_n of_o his_o justice_n and_o have_v just_o move_v he_o to_o pour_v down_o upon_o we_o the_o full_a vial_n of_o his_o wrath_n and_o indignation_n to_o our_o eternal_a destruction_n it_o must_v needs_o then_o strike_v terror_n into_o our_o heart_n when_o we_o come_v before_o he_o in_o our_o heavenly_a meditation_n for_o he_o be_v a_o sin-revenging_a god_n 29._o god_n heb._n 12._o 29._o and_o a_o consume_a fire_n he_o will_v suffer_v no_o sin_n to_o go_v unpunished_a this_o do_v make_v our_o sin_n the_o more_o heinous_a and_o the_o punishment_n of_o they_o the_o more_o grievous_a because_o they_o be_v commit_v against_o a_o omnipotent_a and_o most_o glorious_a god_n from_o who_o we_o have_v our_o first_o be_v and_o from_o who_o goodness_n we_o do_v daily_o receive_v all_o blessing_n both_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a that_o be_v needful_a for_o we_o wherefore_o we_o can_v meditate_v with_o comfort_n upon_o god_n when_o the_o guilt_n of_o our_o sin_n cleave_v to_o our_o soul_n we_o can_v cheerful_o lift_v up_o our_o heart_n unto_o he_o when_o our_o conscience_n do_v accuse_v we_o of_o sin_n that_o we_o have_v offend_v god_n our_o creator_n and_o that_o we_o lie_v under_o the_o curse_n of_o his_o law_n and_o be_v in_o continual_a expectation_n to_o have_v the_o penalty_n of_o it_o inflict_v upon_o we_o which_o we_o know_v we_o have_v just_o deserve_v thus_o it_o be_v with_o we_o until_o we_o can_v apprehend_v god_n to_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n which_o we_o must_v apply_v to_o our_o own_o heart_n by_o faith_n when_o god_n do_v visit_v we_o with_o affliction_n and_o trouble_n as_o he_o have_v do_v to_o many_o of_o his_o dear_a servant_n that_o we_o feel_v the_o smart_n of_o his_o rod_n and_o his_o hand_n heavy_a upon_o we_o it_o will_v take_v away_o the_o comfort_n of_o our_o meditation_n and_o make_v we_o afraid_a of_o his_o judgement_n as_o it_o be_v with_o holy_a job_n david_n and_o other_o because_o sometime_o they_o be_v very_o terrible_a to_o we_o thus_o say_v job_n unto_o god_n in_o his_o affliction_n 21._o affliction_n job._n 13._o 21._o withdraw_v thy_o hand_n far_o from_o i_o and_o let_v not_o thy_o dread_n make_v i_o afraid_a again_o he_o say_v thus_o 4._o thus_o job_n 6._o 4._o the_o terror_n of_o god_n do_v set_v themselves_o in_o array_n against_o i_o if_o god_n be_v so_o dreadful_a to_o his_o own_o servant_n how_o then_o can_v the_o wicked_a and_o sinner_n appear_v before_o he_o how_o can_v they_o withstand_v his_o judgement_n or_o bear_v the_o fierceness_n of_o his_o wrath_n and_o fury_n he_o cast_v the_o disobedient_a angel_n out_o of_o heaven_n without_o any_o hope_n of_o redemption_n he_o cast_v adam_n out_o of_o paradise_n and_o lay_v a_o severe_a curse_n upon_o the_o earth_n for_o his_o sake_n and_o upon_o all_o his_o posterity_n for_o his_o sin_n he_o drown_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o consume_v sodom_n and_o gomorrah_n with_o fire_n he_o give_v his_o own_o people_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o their_o enemy_n for_o their_o transgression_n and_o bring_v grievous_a judgement_n upon_o many_o particular_a offender_n wherefore_o we_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o meditation_n of_o these_o and_o the_o like_a work_n of_o god_n justice_n must_v needs_o be_v dreadful_a and_o uncomfortable_a to_o we_o if_o we_o look_v only_o upon_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n and_o not_o also_o upon_o his_o mercy_n but_o above_o all_o it_o be_v most_o dreadful_a to_o meditate_v upon_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n when_o we_o must_v appear_v before_o this_o great_a and_o terrible_a god_n to_o give_v a_o strict_a account_n unto_o he_o of_o whatsoever_o we_o have_v do_v here_o in_o the_o flesh_n whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o evil_n 11._o evil_n joel._n 2._o 11._o that_o day_n be_v great_a and_o terrible_a who_o can_v abide_v it_o then_o shall_v all_o our_o secret_a sin_n be_v bring_v to_o light_v and_o lay_v open_a to_o the_o view_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n than_o it_o will_v appear_v how_o we_o have_v serve_v god_n what_o good_a we_o have_v do_v and_o what_o evil_a we_o have_v shun_v and_o then_o we_o must_v answer_v for_o every_o idle_a word_n that_o we_o have_v speak_v then_o shall_v be_v great_a confusion_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n to_o the_o astonishment_n of_o all_o nation_n for_o 27._o for_o luk._n 21._o 27._o they_o shall_v see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v in_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n with_o much_o power_n and_o glory_n and_o with_o great_a authority_n and_o majesty_n 10._o majesty_n 2_o cor._n 5._o 10._o all_o must_v then_o be_v present_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o christ_n 5._o christ_n 1_o cor._n 4._o 5._o who_o will_v bring_v to_o light_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v hide_v in_o darkness_n and_o will_v manifest_v all_o the_o thought_n of_o every_o man_n heart_n 16_o heart_n luk._n 23._o 30._o rev._n 6._o 16_o then_o the_o wicked_a shall_v say_v to_o the_o hill_n fall_v upon_o we_o and_o hide_v we_o from_o the_o face_n of_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n and_o from_o the_o anger_n of_o the_o lamb_n because_o the_o great_a day_n of_o wrath_n be_v come_v this_o terror_n will_v be_v so_o unspeakable_a that_o it_o will_v make_v every_o man_n heart_n to_o tremble_v for_o the_o just_a man_n and_o the_o angel_n themselves_o be_v say_v to_o fear_n sure_o then_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v dreadful_a to_o think_v upon_o it_o what_o a_o fearful_a day_n will_v it_o be_v to_o careless_a and_o loose_a liver_n who_o carry_v the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n upon_o their_o soul_n with_o they_o unto_o judgement_n how_o will_v it_o terrify_v they_o when_o they_o see_v such_o dreadful_a fear_n and_o misery_n to_o rush_v in_o upon_o they_o 29._o they_o math._n 24._o 29._o then_o they_o shall_v see_v the_o sun_n to_o be_v darken_v and_o the_o moon_n not_o to_o give_v her_o light_n then_o the_o star_n shall_v fall_v from_o heaven_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o heaven_n shall_v be_v shake_v thus_o say_v the_o prophet_n 14._o prophet_n isa_n 13._o 13_o 14._o the_o earth_n shall_v remove_v out_o of_o her_o place_n in_o the_o wrath_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n and_o in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o fierce_a anger_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v as_o the_o chase_a roe_n and_o as_o the_o sheep_n that_o no_o man_n take_v up_o then_o shall_v they_o see_v all_o sepulchre_n open_a and_o to_o yield_v forth_o their_o dead_a body_n of_o all_o man_n high_a and_o low_a rich_a and_o poor_a to_o stand_v there_o naked_a before_o the_o judge_n and_o before_o his_o angel_n and_o in_o the_o face_n of_o all_o creature_n their_o sin_n shall_v be_v reveal_v their_o secret_a offence_n shall_v be_v lay_v open_a and_o they_o shall_v be_v constrain_v to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o those_o thing_n whereof_o they_o will_v disdain_v to_o have_v be_v tell_v in_o this_o life_n consider_v now_o who_o can_v meditate_v upon_o the_o eternal_a god_n this_o great_a and_o terrible_a judge_n without_o much_o fear_n and_o dread_n if_o he_o can_v appear_v before_o he_o with_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o who_o can_v think_v upon_o that_o fearful_a day_n of_o account_n without_o much_o terror_n and_o trouble_n of_o spirit_n if_o he_o have_v not_o some_o good_a assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n by_o his_o true_a repentance_n and_o that_o he_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n wealth_n and_o honour_n can_v help_v the_o judge_n will_v not_o be_v partial_a neither_o will_v he_o be_v corrupt_v a_o evil_a conscience_n will_v not_o be_v silent_a no_o intercession_n of_o worldly_a friend_n can_v prevail_v at_o that_o day_n all_o thing_n will_v cry_v for_o vengeance_n upon_o the_o wicked_a and_o reprobate_a to_o yield_v they_o cause_n of_o fear_n and_o terror_n but_o nothing_o will_v yield_v they_o any_o hope_n of_o comfort_n above_o they_o shall_v be_v their_o dreadful_a judge_n who_o be_v offend_v with_o they_o for_o their_o wickedness_n beneath_o they_o they_o shall_v see_v hell_n open_v and_o the_o cruel_a furnace_n ready_a boil_v to_o receive_v then_o on_o their_o right_a hand_n their_o sin_n accuse_v they_o on_o the_o left_a hand_n the_o devil_n be_v ready_a to_o execute_v god_n eternal_a
patience_n yet_o god_n will_v bring_v he_o out_o of_o all_o his_o affliction_n and_o restore_v he_o again_o to_o joy_n and_o gladness_n of_o heart_n why_o then_o do_v we_o take_v so_o much_o think_v for_o food_n and_o raiment_n why_o do_v we_o cark_n and_o care_n for_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o life_n why_o be_v we_o so_o cast_v down_o if_o we_o want_v they_o why_o be_v we_o so_o disquiet_v if_o trouble_v sickness_n or_o sorrow_n press_v heavy_a upon_o we_o be_v not_o the_o life_n more_o than_o meat_n and_o the_o body_n more_o than_o raiment_n have_v not_o christ_n have_v experience_n of_o these_o want_n and_o of_o the_o cross_n and_o and_o have_v not_o he_o sanctify_v they_o to_o we_o this_o be_v the_o counsel_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n 30._o christ_n luk._n 12._o 29_o 30._o that_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v of_o doubtful_a mind_n to_o seek_v after_o earthly_a thing_n with_o too_o much_o greediness_n because_o our_o heavenly_a father_n know_v that_o we_o have_v need_n of_o they_o holy_a david_n do_v thus_o parley_v with_o his_o own_o soul_n when_o he_o be_v in_o a_o sad_a condition_n 5_o condition_n psal_n 43._o 5_o why_o be_v thou_o cast_v down_o o_o my_o soul_n and_o why_o be_v thou_o disquiet_v within_o i_o then_o he_o do_v thus_o comfort_v himself_o hope_v in_o god_n for_o i_o shall_v yet_o praiss_v he_o who_o be_v the_o health_n of_o my_o countenance_n and_o my_o god_n for_o he_o will_v provide_v for_o we_o he_o will_v sweet_o comfort_v we_o in_o our_o necessity_n and_o will_v put_v a_o bless_a end_n to_o all_o our_o soorow_n and_o trial_n but_o to_o look_v a_o little_a more_o about_o the_o work_n of_o god_n if_o we_o consider_v the_o wonder_n that_o be_v in_o the_o sea_n where_o the_o great_a leviathan_n do_v sport_v himself_o and_o the_o costly_a and_o precious_a mineral_n that_o be_v in_o the_o earth_n which_o god_n have_v create_v for_o the_o use_n of_o man_n we_o shall_v see_v god_n stamp_n upon_o every_o creature_n which_o give_v we_o just_a occasion_n to_o employ_v our_o pious_a thought_n and_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n in_o the_o meditation_n of_o his_o wonderful_a work_n and_o how_o to_o praise_v he_o for_o his_o goodness_n and_o cheerful_o to_o serve_v he_o in_o true_a thankfulness_n for_o all_o his_o benefit_n to_o we_o we_o must_v not_o therefore_o be_v more_o ignorant_a and_o dull_a of_o understanding_n than_o the_o beast_n we_o must_v not_o be_v like_o the_o jew_n of_o who_o god_n complain_v thus_o by_o his_o prophet_n 3._o prophet_n isa_n 1._o 3._o the_o ox_n know_v his_o owner_n and_o the_o ass_n his_o maker_n crib_n but_o israel_n do_v not_o know_v my_o people_n do_v not_o consider_v wherefore_o let_v our_o heart_n be_v now_o enlarge_v in_o the_o contemplation_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n that_o we_o may_v meditate_v his_o praise_n and_o glory_n for_o the_o comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n how_o can_v we_o forget_v god_n see_v his_o work_n be_v always_o before_o our_o eye_n and_o see_v he_o do_v daily_o feed_v we_o and_o clothe_v we_o with_o his_o good_a creature_n and_o how_o can_v we_o neglect_v our_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n unto_o he_o when_o we_o lie_v down_o at_o night_n and_o when_o we_o rise_v up_o in_o the_o morning_n see_v he_o have_v create_v both_o the_o day_n and_o the_o night_n for_o use_v and_o comfort_v though_o god_n have_v give_v we_o the_o use_n of_o all_o his_o creature_n here_o below_o and_o power_n to_o dispose_v of_o they_o at_o our_o own_o pleasure_n so_o that_o it_o be_v for_o his_o glory_n yet_o we_o know_v not_o how_o long_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v they_o for_o god_n only_o be_v the_o disposer_n of_o time_n to_o give_v more_o or_o less_o as_o he_o please_v for_o as_o the_o psalmist_n say_v 16_o say_v psal_n 74._o 16_o the_o day_n be_v he_o the_o night_n also_o be_v his_o he_o have_v prepare_v the_o light_n and_o the_o sun_n god_n have_v give_v we_o no_o more_o time_n but_o the_o very_a moment_n that_o be_v present_a for_o if_o it_o be_v past_a we_o can_v recall_v it_o if_o it_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v we_o know_v not_o whether_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v it_o when_o one_o moment_n be_v past_a it_o be_v at_o god_n pleasure_n to_o give_v we_o another_o wherefore_o every_o day_n and_o every_o night_n that_o we_o enjoy_v from_o god_n shall_v be_v spend_v to_o that_o end_n for_o which_o god_n have_v ordain_v they_o which_o be_v that_o his_o holy_a worship_n and_o service_n be_v principal_o regard_v that_o our_o lawful_a call_n be_v careful_o follow_v in_o their_o due_a season_n which_o we_o may_v take_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n either_o by_o our_o meditation_n in_o his_o word_n or_o on_o his_o work_n or_o by_o some_o pious_a duty_n as_o god_n shall_v give_v we_o fit_a opportunity_n for_o god_n do_v not_o create_v the_o day_n for_o work_n of_o sin_n and_o wickedness_n but_o for_o work_n of_o piety_n and_o holiness_n neither_o do_v he_o give_v we_o the_o use_n of_o the_o day_n to_o spend_v it_o vain_o idle_o or_o unprofitable_o but_o to_o be_v spend_v about_o that_o which_o do_v conduce_v to_o his_o honour_n and_o glory_n and_o to_o the_o good_a of_o our_o own_o soul_n also_o god_n do_v not_o create_v the_o night_n to_o be_v spend_v in_o work_n of_o darkness_n neither_o do_v he_o give_v we_o the_o use_n of_o the_o night_n for_o luxurious_a pleasure_n but_o to_o weep_v and_o mourn_v for_o our_o sin_n 6._o sin_n psal_n 6._o as_o david_n do_v and_o for_o holy_a meditation_n also_o to_o refresh_v our_o body_n and_o spirit_n when_o they_o be_v weary_v with_o the_o labour_n of_o the_o day_n before_o to_o make_v we_o the_o more_o fit_a for_o the_o duty_n follow_v if_o we_o thus_o spend_v our_o time_n it_o will_v keep_v we_o from_o sin_n in_o the_o day_n and_o from_o uncleanness_n in_o the_o night_n thus_o god_n do_v teach_v we_o high_o to_o prize_v our_o time_n and_o to_o improve_v it_o to_o the_o best_a advantage_n of_o his_o honour_n 12_o honour_n phil._n 2._o 12_o and_o to_o the_o work_n out_o of_o our_o own_o salvation_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a so_o likewise_o 16._o likewise_o eph._n 5._o 16._o we_o ought_v to_o redeem_v the_o time_n that_o we_o have_v lose_v because_o the_o day_n be_v evil_a and_o that_o must_v be_v by_o double_v our_o future_a obedience_n to_o god_n commandment_n thus_o we_o may_v enrich_v our_o soul_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n if_o we_o do_v devout_o meditate_v on_o he_o and_o upon_o the_o creature_n which_o he_o have_v make_v we_o have_v show_v in_o general_a how_o god_n provide_v what_o be_v fit_v for_o all_o live_a creature_n we_o come_v now_o to_o show_v some_o special_a work_n of_o divine_a providence_n to_o the_o saint_n and_o servant_n of_o god_n when_o they_o be_v bring_v into_o such_o strait_n that_o they_o know_v not_o what_o to_o do_v nor_o which_o way_n to_o turn_v themselves_o for_o safety_n if_o we_o have_v mean_n to_o escape_v the_o danger_n or_o to_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o it_o and_o we_o do_v neglect_v it_o we_o have_v then_o no_o ground_n to_o hope_v for_o safety_n or_o deliverance_n by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n because_o we_o bring_v ourselves_o into_o the_o danger_n but_o if_o we_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o escape_v and_o no_o way_n to_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o any_o dangerous_a strait_n we_o may_v then_o cast_v ourselves_o upon_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n and_o he_o will_v make_v a_o way_n for_o we_o to_o escape_v because_o he_o have_v bring_v we_o into_o this_o strait_a to_o manifest_v his_o own_o work_n of_o providence_n for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o for_o our_o safety_n 22._o safety_n gen._n 22._o thus_o he_o bring_v abraham_n into_o a_o great_a strait_n when_o he_o do_v express_o command_v he_o to_o offer_v his_o only_a son_n isaac_n who_o he_o love_v for_o a_o burn_a offering_n abraham_n must_v now_o either_o violate_v his_o faith_n and_o obedience_n to_o god_n or_o else_o he_o must_v slay_v his_o own_o dear_a son_n who_o be_v the_o heir_n of_o the_o promise_n but_o abraham_n cast_v himself_o upon_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n and_o will_v not_o disobey_v his_o command_n then_o god_n show_v he_o a_o ram_n which_o he_o take_v and_o offer_v up_o for_o a_o burn_a offering_n in_o the_o stead_n of_o his_o son_n god_n do_v likewise_o bring_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n into_o a_o terrible_a strait_n when_o they_o march_v out_o of_o egypt_n for_o they_o can_v turn_v no_o way_n from_o apparent_a danger_n of_o destruction_n the_o red_a sea_n be_v before_o they_o their_o enemy_n be_v behind_o they_o and_o mountain_n be_v on_o each_o side_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o way_n or_o mean_n to_o escape_v 10._o escape_v exod._n 14._o
adam_n and_o how_o rebellious_o we_o have_v sin_v against_o god_n in_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o our_o life_n if_o this_o be_v our_o condition_n which_o be_v most_o true_a as_o we_o be_v in_o the_o sta●●_n of_o nature_n what_o comfort_n can_v we_o then_o take_v in_o all_o worldly_a pomp_n and_o dignity_n what_o contentment_n be_v there_o in_o all_o earthly_a pleasure_n and_o delight_n they_o be_v all_o nothing_o else_o but_o vanity_n and_o vexation_n of_o spirit_n we_o may_v enjoy_v more_o of_o this_o world_n than_o our_o heart_n can_v desire_v and_o yet_o our_o soul_n may_v starve_v for_o want_v of_o spiritual_a food_n and_o comfort_n 12_o comfort_n gen._n 4._o 12_o cain_n be_v heir_n apparent_a to_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v drive_v out_o from_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o become_v a_o vagabond_n upon_o earth_n so_o we_o may_v enjoy_v whatsoever_o the_o world_n can_v afford_v we_o and_o yet_o god_n will_v not_o look_v upon_o we_o with_o a_o gracious_a aspect_n and_o then_o our_o condition_n will_v be_v no_o better_o than_o that_o of_o cain_n we_o may_v enjoy_v health_n wealth_n peace_n liberty_n and_o all_o manner_n of_o prosperity_n and_o yet_o our_o soul_n may_v be_v sick_a they_o may_v languish_v with_o sadness_n of_o heart_n they_o may_v be_v much_o perplex_v and_o shut_v up_o as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o dungeon_n because_o they_o be_v so_o restrain_v by_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n that_o they_o have_v no_o freedom_n to_o mount_v upward_o towards_o heaven_n it_o be_v nothing_o so_o uncomfortable_a to_o live_v in_o perpetual_a darkness_n and_o never_o to_o see_v the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n as_o it_o be_v to_o have_v our_o understanding_n spiritual_o darken_v and_o to_o live_v without_o the_o light_n of_o the_o 2_o the_o mal._n 4._o 2_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n to_o have_v no_o appearance_n from_o he_o to_o open_v the_o eye_n of_o our_o understanding_n to_o be_v a_o guide_n to_o our_o reason_n to_o season_v our_o heart_n with_o grace_n and_o to_o show_v we_o the_o way_n that_o will_v bring_v we_o to_o heavenly_a happiness_n this_o be_v our_o condition_n by_o nature_n we_o be_v out_o of_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n our_o life_n be_v void_a of_o all_o true_a comfort_n and_o consolation_n we_o walk_v in_o darkness_n 6_o darkness_n isa_n 53._o 6_o we_o go_v astray_o like_o silly_a sheep_n and_o follow_v our_o own_o invention_n and_o we_o have_v no_o ability_n in_o ourselves_o to_o return_v again_o into_o the_o right_a way_n wherefore_o let_v our_o heart_n be_v thorough_o affect_v with_o this_o our_o sad_a condition_n let_v our_o meditation_n hereupon_o draw_v we_o to_o a_o godly_a sorrow_n for_o our_o sin_n which_o may_v bring_v we_o to_o true_a repentance_n and_o newness_n of_o life_n let_v this_o be_v our_o chief_a care_n and_o the_o desire_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o regain_v the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o to_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o he_o let_v our_o soul_n bewail_v our_o sin_n with_o hearty_a contrition_n and_o true_a compunction_n let_v our_o tear_n manifest_v the_o grief_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o our_o repentance_n for_o our_o transgression_n and_o let_v we_o cast_v ourselves_o down_o at_o god_n footstool_n and_o humble_o acknowledge_v our_o offence_n to_o he_o sue_v earnest_o to_o god_n by_o prayer_n for_o the_o pardon_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o they_o through_o faith_n in_o christ_n also_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v humble_a petitioner_n to_o god_n for_o a_o supply_n of_o such_o grace_n as_o we_o want_v to_o strengthen_v ●s_n against_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n and_o against_o all_o the_o enemy_n of_o our_o salvation_n this_o shall_v be_v our_o constant_a practice_n every_o night_n before_o we_o sleep_v to_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o day_n past_a wherein_o we_o have_v fail_v of_o our_o duty_n and_o wherein_o we_o have_v dishonour_v god_n that_o our_o soul_n may_v rest_v in_o peace_n as_o well_o as_o our_o body_n do_v rest_n in_o quiet_a so_o likewise_o every_o morning_n we_o shall_v acknowledge_v our_o thankfulness_n to_o god_n for_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o night_n past_a and_o to_o crave_v his_o blessing_n upon_o our_o labour_n the_o day_n follow_v if_o we_o continual_o practice_v this_o duty_n it_o will_v keep_v we_o from_o gross_a sin_n and_o great_a offence_n and_o it_o will_v make_v we_o take_v all_o occasion_n to_o renew_v our_o repentance_n with_o god_n for_o our_o sin_n every_o fit_a of_o pain_n or_o of_o sickness_n that_o we_o feel_v and_o every_o cross_n or_o affliction_n that_o we_o suffer_v call_v loud_o for_o repentance_n because_o it_o be_v a_o fruit_n of_o our_o sin_n also_o every_o blessing_n and_o every_o good_a thing_n that_o god_n be_v please_v to_o bestow_v upon_o we_o cry_v loud_o for_o our_o thankfulness_n because_o it_o be_v bestow_v of_o his_o own_o free_a bounty_n and_o goodness_n and_o not_o for_o any_o merit_n or_o desert_n of_o we_o though_o we_o be_v miserable_a vile_a and_o wretched_a in_o ourselves_o yet_o god_n be_v gracious_a and_o merciful_a and_o do_v daily_o give_v we_o occasion_n to_o glorify_v he_o and_o he_o do_v use_v all_o mean_n to_o bring_v we_o home_o again_o unto_o himself_o for_o he_o do_v not_o delight_n in_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n but_o rather_o that_o he_o shall_v repent_v and_o turn_v unto_o he_o neither_o do_v he_o deal_v with_o we_o according_a to_o our_o sin_n nor_o reward_v we_o according_a to_o our_o deserve_n but_o have_v pay_v a_o great_a prize_n for_o our_o redemption_n out_o of_o this_o miserable_a condition_n concern_v the_o redemption_n of_o man._n when_o god_n see_v man_n in_o this_o sad_a condition_n a_o lamentable_a spectacle_n of_o woeful_a misery_n then_o he_o take_v pity_n upon_o he_o 8_o he_o ezek._n 16._o 8_o and_o this_o time_n of_o his_o wretched_a estate_n be_v the_o time_n of_o god_n love_n to_o he_o for_o soon_o after_o his_o fall_n god_n make_v a_o gracious_a promise_n of_o redemption_n to_o he_o 15_o he_o gen._n 3._o 15_o that_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n shall_v break_v the_o serpent_n head_n this_o promise_n god_n do_v afterward_o renew_v to_o the_o patriarch_n which_o be_v concern_v christ_n the_o lord_n that_o shall_v come_v in_o his_o appoint_a time_n who_o god_n do_v plain_o reveal_v to_o some_o of_o the_o prophet_n 5_o prophet_n gal._n 4_o 4_o 5_o when_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o time_n be_v come_v god_n send_v forth_o his_o son_n make_v of_o a_o woman_n make_v under_o the_o law_n to_o redeem_v they_o that_o be_v under_o the_o law_n that_o we_o may_v receive_v the_o adoption_n of_o son_n 10_o son_n 1_o john_n 4_o 9_o 10_o in_o this_o be_v manifest_v the_o love_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o because_o that_o god_n send_v his_o only_o beget_v son_n into_o the_o world_n that_o we_o may_v live_v through_o he_o herein_o be_v love_n not_o that_o we_o love_v god_n but_o that_o he_o love_v we_o and_o send_v his_o son_n to_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n 18_o sin_n john_n ●_o 18_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n who_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o his_o father_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o assume_v our_o nature_n and_o take_v upon_o himself_o the_o guilt_n of_o our_o sin_n to_o redeem_v we_o from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n from_o the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n and_o satan_n and_o from_o the_o power_n of_o death_n 23_o death_n 1_o cor._n 7._o 23_o christ_n have_v also_o pay_v a_o infinite_a price_n for_o our_o redemption_n even_o his_o own_o most_o precious_a blood_n and_o the_o full_a vial_n of_o god_n wrath_n be_v pour_v out_o upon_o he_o because_o he_o do_v undertake_v to_o satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o our_o sin_n for_o thus_o say_v the_o prophet_n 6._o prophet_n isa_n 53._o 6._o the_o lord_n have_v lay_v on_o he_o the_o iniquity_n of_o we_o all_o 8_o all_o act_n 12._o 7_o 8_o now_o let_v we_o gird_v up_o our_o loin_n with_o peter_n and_o bind_v on_o our_o sandal_n 15_o sandal_n eph._n 6._o 15_o and_o let_v our_o foot_n be_v shod_a with_o the_o preparation_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n to_o be_v fit_v and_o prepare_v for_o our_o deliverance_n out_o of_o prison_n for_o the_o chain_n of_o our_o sin_n be_v take_v off_o and_o the_o prison_n door_n be_v open_v to_o set_v we_o at_o liberty_n and_o to_o redeem_v our_o soul_n from_o destruction_n this_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n be_v so_o great_a a_o mystery_n that_o the_o bless_a angel_n do_v adore_v it_o with_o much_o admiration_n but_o they_o can_v comprehend_v it_o it_o be_v decree_v in_o heaven_n before_o the_o world_n be_v and_o all_o the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o holy_a trinity_n have_v their_o several_a operation_n
in_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o 14._o it_o 1._o john_n 4_o 14._o the_o father_n send_v the_o son_n to_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n and_o christ_n himself_o do_v testify_v that_o the_o father_n send_v he_o for_o this_o end_n and_o purpose_n 37_o purpose_n john_n 5._o 36_o 37_o for_o the_o work_n say_v he_o which_o the_o father_n have_v give_v i_o to_o finish_v the_o same_o work_n that_o i_o do_v bear_v witness_n of_o i_o that_o the_o father_n have_v send_v i_o and_o the_o father_n himself_o which_o have_v send_v i_o have_v bear_v witness_n of_o i_o for_o a_o voice_n come_v from_o heaven_n when_o he_o be_v baptize_v say_v ●_o say_v mat._n 3._o ●_o this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v the_o son_n also_o assume_v our_o nature_n both_o soul_n and_o body_n 17._o body_n heb._n 2._o 17._o for_o he_o be_v like_a unto_o we_o in_o all_o thing_n 15_o thing_n heb_fw-mi 4._o 15_o sin_n only_o except_v he_o be_v every_o way_n full_o qualify_v to_o be_v our_o mediator_n and_o redeemer_n he_o become_v our_o surety_n and_o he_o pay_v the_o debt_n that_o we_o do_v ●ow_o to_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o our_o sin_n by_o his_o death_n and_o by_o the_o price_n of_o his_o blood_n the_o holy_a ghost_n also_o rest_v upon_o he_o at_o his_o baptism_n 9_o baptism_n heb._n 1._o 9_o and_o anoint_v he_o with_o the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n above_o his_o fellow_n 19_o fellow_n col._n 1._o 19_o that_o in_o he_o shall_v all_o fullness_n dwell_v 16._o dwell_v john_n 1._o 16._o and_o of_o his_o fullness_n have_v all_o we_o receive_v and_o grace_n for_o grace_n god_n have_v make_v he_o the_o head_n of_o his_o church_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v convey_v all_o save_a grace_n from_o he_o to_o all_o the_o member_n of_o that_o mystical_a body_n wherefore_o if_o we_o be_v elect_v unto_o salvation_n and_o do_v belong_v unto_o christ_n by_o the_o election_n of_o grace_n the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v at_o some_o time_n or_o other_o work_n sanctify_v grace_n in_o we_o and_o will_v unite_v we_o unto_o christ_n by_o faith_n that_o so_o we_o may_v have_v a_o modest_a and_o sober_a assurance_n of_o our_o redemption_n by_o he_o and_o of_o our_o reconcilement_n into_o the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n why_o then_o do_v we_o not_o seek_v to_o be_v ingraft_v into_o christ_n for_o our_o redemption_n why_o do_v we_o continue_v still_o in_o a_o voluntary_a captivity_n and_o bondage_n whereas_o we_o may_v be_v set_v at_o liberty_n why_o be_v we_o still_o exile_v and_o banish_v from_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n whereas_o we_o may_v be_v bring_v again_o into_o his_o favour_n why_o do_v we_o not_o seek_v his_o face_n and_o the_o light_n of_o his_o countenance_n see_v all_o true_a felicity_n and_o happiness_n consist_v therein_o 11_o therein_o psa_fw-la 16._o 11_o and_o see_v at_o his_o right_a hand_n be_v pleasure_n for_o evermore_o and_o why_o be_v we_o so_o backward_o in_o see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n alas_o we_o have_v not_o a_o true_a sense_n of_o our_o own_o miserable_a slavery_n we_o do_v not_o feel_v the_o burden_n of_o our_o sin_n we_o do_v not_o see_v how_o the_o devil_n do_v tyrannize_v over_o we_o how_o he_o do_v beguile_v we_o with_o a_o seem_a pleasure_n and_o profit_n in_o sin_n for_o he_o will_v not_o let_v we_o see_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o loss_n that_o we_o sustain_v by_o it_o nor_o the_o bitterness_n of_o the_o torment_n that_o will_v follow_v after_o it_o beside_o those_o temporal_a sorrow_n that_o it_o bring_v upon_o we_o in_o this_o life_n thus_o the_o devil_n bring_v we_o into_o security_n and_o into_o a_o dead_a sleep_n of_o sin_n and_o do_v so_o stupefy_v all_o the_o faculty_n of_o our_o soul_n that_o we_o have_v no_o sense_n of_o our_o spiritual_a misery_n and_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o lead_v we_o into_o a_o dangerous_a way_n that_o tend_v to_o no_o other_o end_n but_o to_o the_o perdition_n and_o destruction_n of_o our_o soul_n also_o we_o be_v so_o delight_v with_o the_o vanity_n of_o this_o world_n that_o we_o think_v of_o no_o other_o happiness_n than_o what_o we_o do_v now_o enjoy_v or_o if_o there_o be_v any_o other_o heaven_n than_o this_o upon_o earth_n we_o will_v be_v direct_v to_o it_o by_o the_o guidance_n of_o our_o own_o corrupt_a will_n and_o not_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o the_o devil_n will_v persuade_v we_o that_o nature_n can_v find_v out_o a_o ready_a and_o a_o easy_a way_n to_o heavenly_a felicity_n than_o by_o christ_n thus_o we_o be_v hinder_v and_o keep_v back_o by_o the_o delusion_n of_o the_o devil_n by_o the_o allure_a vanity_n of_o the_o world_n and_o by_o the_o deceitfulness_n of_o our_o own_o heart_n that_o we_o can_v come_v unto_o christ_n for_o our_o redemption_n and_o to_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n through_o faith_n in_o he_o and_o to_o have_v a_o holy_a assurance_n of_o it_o by_o our_o sound_n and_o true_a repentance_n wherefore_o it_o do_v now_o plain_o appear_v that_o we_o have_v no_o power_n or_o ability_n in_o ourselves_o to_o come_v unto_o christ_n we_o must_v be_v teach_v of_o god_n or_o else_o we_o can_v find_v the_o way_n he_o must_v draw_v we_o or_o else_o we_o can_v come_v to_o christ_n for_o thus_o say_v christ_n himself_o 44_o himself_o john_n 6._o 44_o no_o man_n can_v come_v unto_o i_o except_o the_o father_n which_o have_v send_v i_o draw_v he_o god_n do_v sometime_o draw_v we_o unto_o christ_n 4_o christ_n hos_fw-la 11._o 4_o as_o he_o draw_v ephraim_n with_o cord_n of_o a_o man_n with_o band_n of_o love_n he_o will_v give_v we_o a_o spiritual_a light_n by_o his_o spirit_n to_o find_v the_o way_n he_o will_v kindle_v a_o holy_a zeal_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n to_o walk_v in_o it_o and_o he_o will_v inflame_v our_o desire_n that_o by_o grace_n we_o may_v come_v to_o christ_n our_o redeemer_n 24_o gal._n 3._o 24_o sometime_o god_n do_v bring_v we_o unto_o christ_n by_o the_o law_n as_o our_o schoolmaster_n with_o a_o rod_n in_o his_o hand_n by_o terrify_v we_o with_o the_o threaten_n of_o the_o law_n if_o that_o be_v not_o sufficient_a than_o he_o will_v make_v we_o feel_v the_o smart_n of_o his_o rod_n by_o affliction_n cross_n and_o tribulation_n god_n do_v also_o send_v his_o minister_n 20_o minister_n 2_o cor_fw-la 5._o 20_o as_o his_o ambassador_n that_o by_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o gospel_n they_o may_v win_v we_o unto_o christ_n and_o to_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o god_n christ_n do_v also_o sweet_o draw_v we_o unto_o himself_o as_o the_o head_n draw_v the_o member_n of_o the_o body_n and_o as_o the_o bridegroom_n draw_v his_o spouse_n thus_o say_v the_o spouse_n to_o her_o belove_a 3_o belove_a cant._n 1._o 3_o draw_v i_o we_o will_v run_v after_o thou_o christ_n do_v also_o love_o invite_v we_o to_o come_v unto_o he_o and_o to_o make_v we_o the_o more_o willing_a to_o come_v he_o do_v allure_v we_o by_o his_o gracious_a promise_n 28_o promise_n mat._n 11._o 28_o come_v unto_o i_o all_o you_o that_o labour_n and_o be_v heavy_a lade_v and_o i_o will_v give_v you_o rest_n thus_o also_o he_o say_v by_o his_o prophet_n 3_o prophet_n isa_n 55._o 1_o 2_o 3_o ho_o every_o one_o that_o thirst_v come_v you_o to_o the_o water_n and_o he_o that_o have_v no_o money_n come_v you_o buy_v and_o eat_v yea_o come_v buy_v wine_n and_o milk_n without_o money_n and_o without_o price_n harken_v diligent_o unto_o i_o and_o eat_v you_o that_o which_o be_v good_a and_o let_v your_o soul_n delight_v itself_o in_o fatness_n incline_v your_o ear_n and_o come_v unto_o i_o hear_v and_o your_o soul_n shall_v live_v how_o can_v christ_n express_v his_o love_n more_o free_o to_o a_o poor_a sinful_a soul_n than_o now_o he_o do_v what_o will_v move_v we_o to_o come_v unto_o he_o if_o this_o free_a tender_a of_o grace_n can_v but_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v be_v quite_o without_o excuse_n and_o that_o the_o love_n of_o god_n may_v abundant_o appear_v unto_o we_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v likewise_o draw_v we_o unto_o christ_n by_o give_v we_o a_o true_a sight_n and_o sense_n of_o our_o sin_n by_o show_v we_o the_o mean_n how_o we_o may_v be_v free_v from_o the_o guilt_n and_o from_o the_o condemn_a power_n of_o sin_n by_o work_a faith_n in_o we_o to_o apply_v to_o ourselves_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n blood_n and_o his_o righteousness_n for_o our_o justification_n and_o by_o work_v we_o into_o newness_n of_o life_n by_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n it_o do_v now_o plain_o and_o evident_o appear_v that_o our_o sin_n have_v set_v we_o at_o a_o far_a distance_n from_o god_n according_a to_o this_o of_o the_o
our_o life_n will_v be_v much_o the_o hard_a time_n be_v not_o gain_v but_o lose_v which_o we_o spend_v without_o some_o fruit_n of_o grace_n and_o godliness_n which_o indeed_o be_v the_o true_a gain_n of_o time_n and_o therefore_o we_o shall_v seek_v unto_o god_n while_o he_o may_v be_v find_v 6._o find_v isa_n 55._o 6._o we_o shall_v call_v upon_o he_o while_o he_o be_v near_o otherwise_o though_o we_o seek_v he_o he_o will_v not_o be_v find_v and_o though_o we_o call_v upon_o he_o he_o will_v not_o answer_v nor_o be_v entreat_v thus_o say_v the_o apostle_n 2_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 6._o 2_o now_o be_v the_o time_n acceptable_a now_o be_v the_o day_n of_o salvation_n but_o we_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o bewail_v our_o condition_n for_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n do_v so_o weaken_v we_o and_o the_o power_n of_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n do_v so_o prevail_v against_o we_o that_o we_o can_v break_v through_o such_o strong_a opposition_n as_o they_o make_v to_o hinder_v this_o holy_a work_n of_o grace_n in_o we_o i_o he_o devil_n do_v cunning_o dissuade_v we_o from_o it_o the_o world_n do_v strong_o allure_v we_o to_o follow_v still_o the_o vanity_n of_o it_o and_o our_o own_o flesh_n do_v daily_o entice_v we_o to_o carnal_a pleasure_n and_o delight_n so_o that_o we_o can_v find_v no_o time_n to_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n or_o to_o improve_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n to_o his_o glory_n and_o to_o our_o own_o comfort_n though_o we_o do_v sometime_o strive_v against_o our_o sin_n yet_o we_o can_v overcome_v they_o or_o if_o one_o sin_n be_v subdue_v another_o be_v ready_a to_o rise_v up_o against_o we_o also_o though_o we_o can_v actual_o commit_v a_o sin_n yet_o we_o may_v commit_v it_o in_o our_o sinful_a desire_n to_o it_o in_o a_o sinful_a remembrance_n of_o it_o in_o consent_v to_o it_o or_o in_o suffer_v it_o to_o be_v do_v when_o by_o our_o place_n and_o authority_n we_o may_v hinder_v it_o we_o have_v also_o just_a cause_n to_o bemoan_v ourselves_o for_o though_o we_o do_v labour_n for_o grace_n and_o do_v use_v all_o mean_n for_o it_o to_o the_o best_a of_o our_o power_n and_o yet_o we_o can_v attain_v unto_o it_o though_o it_o be_v thus_o with_o we_o yet_o we_o must_v still_o continue_v our_o best_a endeavour_n to_o oppose_v all_o the_o enemy_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o we_o must_v still_o use_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o wait_v upon_o god_n until_o he_o shall_v please_v to_o work_v grace_n in_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n also_o we_o must_v pray_v unto_o he_o with_o a_o faithful_a heart_n that_o by_o the_o omnipotent_a power_n of_o his_o grace_n e_z and_o by_o the_o rod_n of_o his_o strength_n which_o be_v the_o word_n and_o spirit_n he_o will_v make_v we_o able_a to_o overcome_v our_o corruption_n by_o season_v our_o heart_n with_o grace_n to_o subdue_v the_o power_n of_o our_o sin_n by_o repentance_n to_o improve_v our_o time_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o also_o to_o break_v through_o the_o snare_n of_o the_o devil_n the_o world_n and_o the_o flesh_n then_o god_n will_v so_o bless_v we_o in_o our_o pious_a endeavour_n that_o we_o shall_v prevail_v against_o all_o opposition_n and_o adversary_n power_n not_o by_o our_o own_o strength_n but_o by_o the_o might_n and_o power_n of_o jesus_n christ_n our_o gracious_a redeemer_n 9_o redeemer_n 2_o cor._n 12._o 9_o who_o grace_n and_o favour_n be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o and_o who_o strength_n be_v make_v perfect_a in_o our_o weakness_n under_o who_o banner_n we_o fight_v these_o spiritual_a battle_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o his_o great_a name_n of_o christ_n our_o redeemer_n if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o christ_n be_v our_o redeemer_n and_o have_v wrought_v our_o redemption_n with_o his_o own_o blood_n and_o have_v purchase_v for_o we_o a_o new_a covenant_n and_o a_o everlasting_a inheritance_n in_o heaven_n as_o formerly_z in_o part_n have_v be_v show_v also_o if_o we_o have_v all_o our_o strength_n and_o power_n from_o he_o against_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n without_o who_o we_o can_v stand_v against_o they_o nor_o break_v through_o the_o band_n of_o death_n to_o enjoy_v that_o heavenly_a inheritance_n which_o he_o have_v prepare_v for_o we_o we_o must_v then_o know_v who_o christ_n be_v what_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o his_o person_n what_o be_v his_o power_n and_o strength_n and_o how_o he_o be_v qualify_v for_o this_o great_a work_n that_o we_o may_v have_v a_o sure_a ground_n to_o confide_v in_o he_o and_o to_o rest_v upon_o he_o as_o our_o redeemer_n and_o only_a saviour_n also_o we_o must_v know_v how_o he_o have_v satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o our_o sin_n how_o he_o have_v conquer_v death_n hell_n and_o the_o devil_n and_o what_o price_n he_o have_v pay_v for_o our_o ransom_n for_o without_o this_o heavenly_a knowledge_n and_o faith_n to_o apply_v it_o to_o ourselves_o we_o can_v draw_v no_o comfort_n to_o our_o soul_n from_o christ_n neither_o can_v we_o have_v any_o good_a assurance_n that_o we_o be_v free_v from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n that_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n be_v satisfy_v for_o our_o sin_n that_o sin_n have_v no_o condemn_a power_n over_o we_o that_o the_o sting_n of_o death_n be_v take_v away_o and_o that_o we_o be_v reconcile_v again_o unto_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n god_n have_v reveal_v these_o deep_a mystery_n to_o we_o in_o his_o holy_a word_n that_o the_o meditation_n of_o our_o heart_n may_v be_v enlarge_v upon_o they_o for_o our_o instruction_n and_o edification_n and_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n as_o god_n shall_v give_v light_n to_o our_o understanding_n by_o his_o bless_a spirit_n but_o as_o the_o prophet_n say_v 8._o say_v be_v 53._o 8._o who_o can_v declare_v his_o generation_n which_o be_v from_o eternity_n for_o christ_n our_o redeemer_n be_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n 18._o god_n joh._n 1._o 18._o who_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n and_o be_v promise_v and_o expect_v since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o when_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n be_v come_v that_o god_n have_v appoint_v for_o his_o incarnation_n 14_o incarnation_n john_n 1._o 14_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n for_o 16_o for_o heb._n 2._o 16_o he_o take_v on_o he_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n and_o personal_o unite_v to_o his_o divine_a nature_n a_o true_a humane_a body_n 32._o body_n luc._n 1._o 31_o 32._o of_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n 38_o mary_n mat._n 26._o 38_o which_o be_v endue_v with_o a_o reasonable_a soul_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v so_o sanctify_v her_o womb_n that_o he_o be_v bear_v without_o sin_n either_o original_n or_o actual_a and_o though_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n be_v take_v into_o his_o deity_n whereby_o this_o union_n be_v never_o to_o be_v dissolve_v yet_o either_o nature_n have_v their_o whole_a property_n and_o operation_n remain_v still_o unconfound_v and_o therefore_o he_o be_v true_a god_n and_o true_a man_n 17_o man_n heb._n 2._o 17_o like_v unto_o we_o in_o all_o thing_n 15._o thing_n heb._n 4._o 15._o sin_n only_o except_v and_o those_o two_o nature_n make_v but_o one_o person_n in_o christ_n 18_o christ_n mat._n 28._o 18_o to_o who_o god_n the_o father_n have_v give_v all_o power_n in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n so_o that_o he_o command_v and_o over-ruleth_a all_o create_a power_n whatsoever_o god_n do_v also_o give_v he_o three_o honourable_a office_n that_o he_o may_v be_v every_o way_n fit_a to_o be_v our_o eternal_a mediator_n between_o god_n and_o we_o for_o god_n ordain_v he_o to_o be_v a_o prophet_n to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v we_o to_o be_v a_o priest_n to_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o and_o to_o offer_v such_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n for_o our_o sin_n as_o he_o will_v accept_v and_o to_o be_v a_o king_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v his_o church_n and_o also_o to_o rule_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o his_o spirit_n christ_n be_v thus_o qualify_v have_v fulfil_v for_o we_o and_o in_o our_o nature_n whatsoever_o the_o law_n do_v require_v of_o we_o and_o his_o righteousness_n be_v impute_v to_o we_o by_o faith_n for_o our_o justification_n that_o no_o guilt_n of_o sin_n may_v cleave_v to_o we_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n when_o christ_n do_v execute_v that_o part_n of_o his_o priestly_a office_n which_o be_v the_o offer_v up_o of_o his_o body_n a_o sacrifice_n for_o we_o no_o heart_n can_v conceive_v and_o no_o tongue_n can_v express_v the_o bitter_a torment_n which_o he_o suffer_v both_o in_o his_o soul_n and_o in_o his_o body_n to_o satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o purchase_v our_o freedom_n and_o redemptition_n out_o of_o the_o captivity_n
such_o a_o highpriest_n become_v we_o who_o be_v holy_a harmless_a undefiled_a separate_a from_o sin_n and_o make_v high_a than_o the_o heaven_n when_o christ_n do_v offer_v up_o himself_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n his_o whole_a humane_a nature_n be_v bind_v to_o the_o altar_n of_o his_o divinity_n with_o the_o cord_n of_o unseparable_a union_n and_o love_n 10_o love_n isa_n 53._o 10_o and_o his_o soul_n be_v make_v a_o offering_n for_o sin_n as_o well_o as_o his_o body_n which_o be_v crucify_v and_o his_o precious_a blood_n which_o be_v pour_v out_o upon_o the_o cross_n 27._o cross_n heb._n 7._o 27._o this_o sacrifice_n though_o it_o be_v but_o once_o offer_v be_v sufficient_a to_o satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n to_o appease_v his_o wrath_n to_o blot_v all_o our_o sin_n out_o of_o his_o book_n of_o remembrance_n and_o to_o perfect_a for_o ever_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v this_o be_v also_o pious_o to_o be_v consider_v 6._o consider_v rev._n 1._o 6._o that_o christ_n by_o his_o eternal_a priesthood_n have_v make_v we_o king_n and_o priest_n unto_o god_n and_o his_o father_n 5_o father_n 1_o pet._n 2._o 5_o and_o a_o holy_a priesthood_n to_o offer_v up_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n acceptable_a to_o god_n by_o jesus_n christ_n these_o sacrifice_n be_v our_o prayer_n our_o praise_n thanksgiving_n and_o a_o break_a and_o a_o contrite_a heart_n for_o our_o sin_n 1●_n sin_n phil._n 4._o 1●_n also_o our_o deed_n of_o charity_n to_o the_o poor_a member_n of_o christ_n be_v and_o odour_n of_o a_o sweet_a smell_n a_o sacrifice_n acceptable_a a_o well_o please_v to_o god_n paul_n do_v beseech_v the_o roman_n 1_o roman_n rom._n 12._o 1_o to_o present_v their_o body_n a_o live_a sacrifice_n holy_a acceptable_a to_o god_n which_o be_v their_o reasonable_a service_n so_o that_o whatsoever_o we_o offer_v unto_o god_n it_o must_v be_v offer_v with_o a_o sanctify_a heart_n which_o be_v wash_v and_o purify_v in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n and_o endue_v with_o sanctify_a grace_n from_o above_o and_o then_o our_o sacrifice_n will_v be_v clean_a and_o accept_v of_o god_n though_o our_o prayer_n and_o praise_n be_v imperfect_a and_o come_v far_o short_a of_o that_o which_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v yet_o if_o they_o proceed_v from_o a_o sincere_a heart_n and_o be_v offer_v up_o by_o jesus_n christ_n our_o highpriest_n than_o he_o will_v perfect_v they_o with_o his_o own_o righteousness_n and_o present_v they_o to_o god_n his_o father_n for_o we_o and_o we_o may_v rest_v assure_v that_o god_n will_v be_v please_v to_o accept_v they_o gracious_o wherefore_o see_v christ_n have_v make_v we_o priest_n unto_o god_n because_o we_o belong_v unto_o he_o we_o must_v offer_v up_o our_o prayer_n and_o oblation_n to_o god_n and_o not_o to_o saint_n or_o angel_n for_o he_o be_v the_o author_n and_o the_o giver_n of_o every_o blessing_n and_o mercy_n that_o we_o receive_v he_o provide_v for_o we_o food_n and_o raiment_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v needful_a both_o for_o this_o present_a life_n and_o for_o that_o which_o be_v to_o come_v he_o do_v protect_v we_o from_o danger_n he_o do_v support_v we_o in_o our_o tribulation_n and_o deliver_v we_o out_o of_o our_o distress_n when_o we_o cry_v unto_o he_o with_o a_o faithful_a heart_n we_o have_v therefore_o great_a cause_n to_o ascribe_v all_o honour_n and_o glory_n unto_o he_o and_o thankful_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o god_n be_v the_o sole_a author_n of_o all_o our_o good_a to_o who_o we_o must_v return_v all_o praise_n and_o thanks_o for_o it_o also_o if_o our_o prayer_n and_o oblation_n have_v no_o relation_n unto_o christ_n by_o faith_n they_o can_v be_v accept_v neither_o can_v we_o confident_o hope_v to_o receive_v a_o gracious_a return_n of_o they_o with_o a_o blessing_n except_o we_o believe_v that_o christ_n our_o advocate_n will_v present_v they_o to_o god_n his_o father_n if_o we_o do_v due_o consider_v how_o much_o we_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o god_n help_a hand_n and_o of_o his_o assist_a grace_n to_o carry_v we_o on_o through_o all_o the_o trouble_n and_o danger_n that_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o in_o this_o life_n also_o how_o god_n do_v continual_o follow_v we_o with_o his_o tender_a mercy_n and_o love_a kindness_n we_o will_v not_o be_v so_o slack_a in_o our_o prayer_n and_o praise_n unto_o he_o and_o if_o we_o do_v consider_v that_o our_o prayer_n must_v mount_v up_o even_o to_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n majesty_n they_o will_v not_o be_v so_o cold_a so_o dull_a and_o so_o much_o clog_v with_o worldly_a care_n and_o sinful_a thought_n as_o common_o they_o be_v which_o do_v hinder_v their_o swift_a ascent_n up_o to_o heaven_n but_o we_o will_v labour_v to_o be_v more_o heavenly_a mind_a and_o to_o put_v more_o holy_a zeal_n and_o fervency_n into_o they_o and_o to_o send_v our_o faith_n along_o with_o they_o which_o will_v soon_o bring_v they_o unto_o christ_n and_o then_o he_o will_v present_v they_o unto_o god_n for_o we_o so_o likewise_o if_o we_o consider_v how_o careless_a we_o be_v in_o the_o worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n how_o ready_a we_o be_v to_o fall_v from_o he_o how_o imperfect_o our_o best_a duty_n be_v perform_v what_o sin_n we_o daily_o commit_v and_o what_o wrath_n and_o fury_n we_o do_v just_o deserve_v for_o they_o we_o shall_v then_o be_v more_o humble_a more_o affect_v with_o godly_a sorrow_n and_o more_o careful_a to_o renew_v our_o repentance_n every_o day_n our_o sigh_n and_o groan_n for_o our_o sin_n will_v proceed_v from_o our_o hearty_a contrition_n and_o from_o true_a compunction_n of_o spirit_n and_o then_o our_o faith_n in_o christ_n will_v give_v we_o a_o firm_a assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n and_o forgiuness_n of_o they_o all_o for_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n 2._o lord_n isa_n 66._o 2._o to_o this_o man_n will_v i_o look_v even_o to_o he_o that_o be_v poor_a and_o of_o a_o contrite_a spirit_n and_o tremble_v at_o my_o word_n also_o 15_o also_o isa_n 57_o 15_o thus_o say_v the_o high_a and_o lofty_a one_o that_o inhabit_v eternity_n who_o name_n be_v holy_a i_o dwell_v in_o the_o high_a and_o holy_a place_n with_o he_o also_o that_o be_v of_o a_o contrite_a and_o humble_a spirit_n to_o revive_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o humble_a and_o to_o revive_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o contrite_a one_o wherefore_o now_o if_o we_o think_v to_o have_v our_o want_n and_o necessity_n supply_v by_o our_o industry_n in_o our_o calling_n without_o prayer_n if_o we_o think_v to_o be_v support_v in_o our_o trouble_n or_o to_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o our_o misery_n with_o prayer_n to_o be_v nourish_v at_o our_o table_n or_o refresh_v in_o our_o bed_n without_o prayer_n and_o to_o be_v ease_v of_o our_o pain_n or_o recover_v of_o our_o disease_n without_o prayer_n we_o shall_v either_o miss_v our_o desire_n or_o else_o we_o shall_v have_v they_o without_o a_o blessing_n we_o can_v conceive_v how_o prevail_a faithful_a prayer_n be_v with_o god_n if_o it_o be_v present_v to_o he_o by_o christ_n thus_o say_v james_n 18_o james_n jam._n 5._o 15_o 16_o 17_o 18_o the_o prayer_n of_o faith_n shall_v save_v the_o sick_a and_o if_o he_o commit_v sin_n they_o shall_v be_v forgive_v he_o and_o again_o the_o effectual_a servant_n prayer_n of_o a_o righteous_a man_n avail_v much_o elias_n pray_v earnest_o that_o it_o may_v not_o rain_v and_o it_o rain_v not_o on_o the_o earth_n by_o the_o space_n of_o three_o year_n and_o six_o month_n and_o he_o pray_v again_o and_o the_o heaven_n give_v rain_n and_o the_o earth_n bring_v forth_o her_o fruit_n 17_o fruit_n gen._n 20._o 17_o at_o the_o prayer_n of_o abraham_n god_n heal_v abimelech_n and_o his_o wife_n and_o his_o maid_n servant_n and_o they_o bare_a child_n 1._o child_n 1_o sam._n 1._o by_o prayer_n hannah_n obtain_v a_o son_n 11._o son_n exod._n 32._o 11._o moses_n by_o prayer_n do_v stop_v the_o flood_n gate_n of_o god_n fury_n that_o be_v ready_a to_o be_v pour_v out_o upon_o his_o own_o people_n for_o their_o idolatry_n in_o worship_v the_o golden_a calf_n by_o prayer_n we_o may_v obtain_v any_o blessing_n from_o god_n and_o escape_v any_o judgement_n that_o he_o have_v threaten_v likewise_o our_o interest_n that_o we_o have_v in_o christ_n by_o faith_n will_v make_v our_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n to_o god_n for_o blessing_n receive_v to_o be_v accept_v and_o will_v also_o make_v they_o not_o to_o return_v empty_a again_o into_o our_o bosom_n if_o our_o repentance_n for_o our_o sin_n be_v without_o faith_n in_o christ_n it_o will_v give_v we_o no_o good_a assurance_n of_o pardon_n though_o we_o do_v express_v all_o the_o outward_a sign_n of_o true_a humiliation_n and_o though_o we_o break_v our_o heart_n with_o grief_n yet_o we_o can_v
be_v overthrow_v it_o may_v be_v shake_v with_o his_o boisterous_a and_o violent_a temptation_n but_o it_o shall_v never_o be_v cast_v down_o because_o our_o faith_n be_v build_v upon_o a_o sure_a rock_n which_o be_v christ_n jesus_n our_o king_n and_o head_n if_o sorrow_n and_o cross_n break_v in_o upon_o we_o which_o we_o can_v not_o prevent_v nor_o avoid_v we_o need_v not_o fear_v for_o we_o shall_v see_v the_o salvation_n of_o christ_n either_o in_o our_o strength_n and_o patience_n to_o bear_v they_o meek_o or_o in_o our_o deliverance_n out_o of_o they_o or_o else_o he_o will_v sanctify_v they_o to_o our_o good_a we_o need_v not_o cark_n and_o care_n for_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o life_n but_o when_o we_o have_v do_v our_o best_a endeavour_n in_o a_o honest_a and_o lawful_a call_n we_o must_v leave_v the_o event_n and_o success_n to_o god_n which_o peculiar_o belong_v unto_o he_o and_o then_o he_o will_v have_v a_o care_n of_o we_o 3._o we_o deut._n 8._o 3._o for_o man_n live_v not_o by_o bread_n only_o but_o by_o every_o word_n that_o proceed_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lord_n 24_o lord_n luc._n 12._o 24_o god_n feed_v the_o young_a raven_n when_o they_o cry_v unto_o he_o then_o much_o more_o will_v he_o feed_v we_o for_o it_o be_v part_n of_o his_o kingly_a office_n to_o provide_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v needful_a for_o those_o that_o belong_v unto_o he_o shall_v not_o the_o head_n provide_v for_o the_o member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n and_o shall_v not_o christ_n provide_v for_o we_o who_o have_v near_a relation_n to_o he_o by_o faith_n now_o try_v and_o examine_v thyself_o search_v into_o thy_o own_o soul_n to_o see_v if_o christ_n have_v set_v up_o his_o sceptre_n of_o righteousness_n in_o thy_o heart_n to_o bear_v rule_n in_o thy_o affection_n to_o regulate_v thy_o crooked_a and_o perverse_a will_n and_o to_o bring_v unto_o his_o subjection_n whatsoever_o resist_v or_o rebell_v against_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n if_o thou_o do_v find_v the_o fruit_n of_o sanctify_a grace_n in_o thou_o then_o make_v a_o further_a scrutiny_n to_o see_v unto_o what_o measure_n of_o grace_n thou_o have_v attain_v what_o corruption_n have_v it_o mortify_v in_o thou_o what_o strong_a hold_v of_o sinful_a lust_n have_v it_o beat_v down_o how_o be_v the_o body_n of_o sin_n dismember_v and_o weaken_v how_o strong_a be_v thy_o faith_n to_o rest_v and_o depend_v upon_o christ_n in_o all_o difficulty_n and_o danger_n can_v thou_o joyful_o bear_v the_o scandal_n of_o the_o cross_n can_v thou_o meek_o bear_v the_o loss_n of_o thy_o friend_n of_o thy_o liberty_n or_o estate_n for_o his_o sake_n have_v thou_o faith_n and_o patience_n to_o suffer_v affliction_n persecution_n sword_n or_o famine_n for_o he_o and_o can_v thou_o resist_v unto_o blood_n if_o christ_n thy_o king_n shall_v call_v thou_o to_o it_o then_o it_o be_v a_o evident_a sign_n that_o his_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n be_v well_o establish_v in_o thy_o heart_n and_o hereafter_o thou_o shall_v have_v a_o large_a inheritance_n in_o his_o kingdom_n of_o glory_n 10_o pet._n 1._o 10_o wherefore_o give_v all_o diligence_n to_o make_v thy_o call_n and_o election_n sure_a that_o thou_o may_v be_v invest_v into_o his_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n here_o which_o will_v bring_v thou_o hereafter_o to_o eternal_a blessedness_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n now_o set_v thy_o mind_n and_o the_o meditation_n of_o thy_o heart_n upon_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v thy_o king_n and_o resolve_v with_o a_o holy_a resolution_n to_o submit_v thyself_o to_o his_o rule_n and_o government_n to_o be_v direct_v by_o he_o in_o all_o thy_o way_n and_o to_o express_v thy_o thankfulness_n to_o he_o for_o his_o great_a care_n of_o thou_o who_o by_o his_o divine_a providence_n dispose_v all_o thing_n for_o thy_o good_a if_o trouble_n and_o calamity_n follow_v thou_o like_o the_o billow_n of_o the_o sea_n christ_n will_v calm_v they_o if_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o overwhelm_v thou_o then_o even_o then_o will_v christ_n take_v thou_o by_o the_o hand_n 31_o hand_n mat._n 14._o 31_o as_o he_o do_v peter_n upon_o the_o sea_n and_o will_v keep_v thou_o from_o sink_v if_o god_n look_v angry_o upon_o thou_o for_o thy_o sin_n christ_n will_v appease_v his_o wrath_n and_o make_v intercession_n for_o thou_o if_o death_n look_v upon_o thou_o with_o a_o grim_a countenance_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o bereave_v thou_o of_o thy_o soul_n and_o to_o expose_v thy_o body_n to_o the_o worm_n yet_o know_v with_o holy_a job_n 25_o job_n job_n 19_o 25_o that_o thy_o redeemer_n live_v also_o 22._o also_o luc_n 6._o 22._o that_o he_o will_v give_v his_o angel_n charge_v to_o carry_v thy_o soul_n up_o into_o abraham_n bosom_n and_o at_o length_n he_o will_v raise_v up_o thy_o body_n out_o of_o the_o dust_n and_o will_v make_v it_o a_o glorious_a and_o incorruptible_a body_n fit_a to_o live_v and_o reign_v with_o he_o for_o ever_o thus_o and_o much_o more_o will_v christ_n do_v for_o all_o those_o that_o have_v any_o relation_n to_o he_o by_o faith_n or_o that_o belong_v to_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o his_o great_a name_n and_o for_o the_o eternal_a good_a of_o his_o church_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ._n when_o christ_n have_v finish_v his_o prophetical_a office_n in_o his_o ministry_n and_o have_v wrought_v so_o many_o miracle_n as_o seem_v good_a to_o his_o divine_a wisdom_n the_o time_n be_v then_o come_v that_o he_o must_v offer_v up_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n for_o our_o redemption_n which_o be_v his_o whole_a humane_a nature_n soul_n and_o body_n for_o our_o sin_n then_o 25._o then_o rom._n 4._o 25._o god_n deliver_v he_o up_o to_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o enemy_n for_o our_o offence_n because_o the_o guilt_n of_o all_o our_o sinne_n be_v charge_v upon_o he_o for_o before_o this_o very_a time_n neither_o the_o devil_n nor_o his_o deadly_a enemy_n have_v any_o power_n against_o he_o this_o be_v the_o time_n which_o god_n have_v decree_v in_o his_o secret_a counsel_n that_o christ_n shall_v submit_v himself_o to_o their_o malice_n and_o power_n that_o the_o work_n which_o god_n have_v send_v he_o to_o do_v may_v be_v finish_v and_o when_o that_o work_n be_v perfect_o wrought_v than_o god_n deliver_v he_o out_o of_o their_o power_n by_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n wherefore_o we_o ought_v to_o prepare_v our_o heart_n for_o holy_a and_o devout_a meditation_n upon_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v most_o bitter_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n because_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v pour_v out_o upon_o he_o for_o our_o sin_n and_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n be_v let_v loose_a against_o he_o like_v so_o many_o wolf_n to_o worry_v this_o immaculate_a lamb_n of_o god_n or_o like_v so_o many_o fierce_a mastiff_n against_o the_o lion_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n but_o the_o innocency_n of_o christ_n do_v carry_v he_o through_o his_o whole_a passion_n and_o by_o his_o own_o power_n he_o overcome_v the_o sury_n of_o all_o his_o enemy_n though_o they_o be_v permit_v to_o torment_v and_o torture_v he_o at_o their_o pleasure_n even_o to_o the_o death_n christ_n suffer_v nothing_o for_o himself_o but_o it_o be_v for_o all_o those_o that_o be_v of_o the_o election_n of_o grace_n the_o guilt_n of_o who_o sin_n he_o do_v take_v upon_o himself_o and_o to_o pay_v their_o debt_n to_o satisfy_v the_o penalty_n of_o the_o law_n for_o they_o by_o his_o death_n and_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n also_o it_o be_v to_o clothe_v they_o with_o his_o own_o righteousness_n that_o they_o may_v be_v justify_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n therefore_o let_v no_o circumstance_n of_o his_o passion_n pass_v without_o due_a consideration_n 12_o consideration_n lam._n 1._o 12_o behold_v and_o see_v if_o there_o be_v any_o sorrow_n like_a unto_o his_o sorrow_n which_o be_v do_v unto_o he_o wherewith_o the_o lord_n have_v afflict_v he_o in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o fierce_a anger_n how_o be_v the_o perfection_n of_o beauty_n stain_v how_o be_v the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n cloud_v how_o be_v the_o bright_a morning_n star_n darken_v how_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n contemn_v blaspheme_v scorn_v and_o spiteful_o use_v how_o be_v perfect_a holiness_n and_o innocency_n accuse_v reject_v condemn_a cruel_o torment_v and_o most_o shameful_o kill_v and_o how_o be_v truth_n itself_o despise_v and_o tread_v under_o foot_n can_v we_o think_v upon_o his_o passion_n without_o tear_n and_o mourning_n if_o we_o belong_v unto_o he_o can_v we_o ruminate_v upon_o it_o and_o not_o accuse_v and_o condemn_v ourselves_o who_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o he_o suffer_v these_o thing_n and_o much_o
god_n that_o do_v purge_v our_o conscience_n from_o dead_a work_n to_o serve_v the_o live_a god_n also_o john_n say_v 7_o say_v rev._n 1._o 7_o that_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o sin_n so_o that_o no_o spot_n no_o stain_n no_o guilt_n of_o sin_n shall_v cleave_v to_o our_o soul_n to_o our_o condemnation_n and_o as_o he_o in_o himself_o according_a to_o his_o divine_a nature_n be_v infinite_a so_o the_o price_n which_o he_o pay_v at_o his_o passion_n for_o our_o redemption_n be_v of_o infinite_a worth_n and_o the_o benefit_n that_o we_o receive_v by_o he_o be_v likewise_o infinite_a if_o we_o be_v cleanse_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o all_o our_o sin_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n than_o the_o sting_n which_o sin_n have_v put_v into_o all_o thing_n that_o we_o possess_v be_v take_v away_o and_o we_o may_v comfortable_o use_v they_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n by_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n have_v sanctify_v they_o to_o we_o for_o our_o good_a riches_n shall_v not_o make_v we_o proud_a or_o ambitious_a nor_o steal_v away_o our_o heart_n from_o god_n want_n and_o penury_n shall_v not_o make_v we_o repine_v or_o murmur_v against_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n to_o make_v we_o forsake_v he_o but_o all_o thing_n shall_v work_v together_o for_o our_o good_a death_n shall_v not_o be_v terrible_a but_o advantage_n to_o we_o and_o we_o shall_v sleep_v quiet_o in_o our_o grave_n until_o the_o general_a resurrection_n because_o no_o guilt_n of_o sin_n will_v lie_v down_o with_o we_o in_o the_o dust_n to_o follow_v we_o unto_o judgement_n though_o sin_n have_v wound_v our_o soul_n 2._o soul_n mal._n 4._o 2._o yet_o if_o we_o fear_v his_o name_n the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n shall_v arise_v with_o heal_v in_o his_o wing_n to_o cure_v it_o for_o 34._o for_o luc._n 10._o 34._o christ_n like_o the_o good_a samaritan_n will_v pour_v in_o wine_n and_o oil_n to_o cleanse_v and_o heal_v it_o though_o sin_n do_v sometime_o overpower_v we_o yet_o christ_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o death_n will_v subdue_v and_o kill_v it_o in_o we_o and_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o resurrection_n he_o will_v quicken_v we_o up_o to_o newness_n of_o life_n and_o he_o will_v make_v our_o unruly_a passion_n and_o sinful_a desire_n to_o be_v tributary_n and_o servant_n to_o we_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o of_o his_o sanctify_a grace_n 23._o grace_n josh_n 9_o 23._o as_o joshua_n make_v the_o gibeonite_n hewer_n of_o wood_n and_o drawer_n of_o water_n for_o the_o house_n of_o god_n last_o 10._o last_o 1_o thes_n 1._o 10._o christ_n have_v deliver_v we_o by_o his_o passion_n from_o the_o wrath_n to_o come_v and_o from_o all_o the_o punishment_n that_o be_v due_a to_o we_o for_o our_o sin_n christ_n do_v not_o begin_v his_o passion_n until_o he_o have_v fulfil_v all_o righteousness_n in_o his_o life_n and_o doctrine_n that_o the_o law_n require_v though_o his_o whole_a life_n be_v a_o life_n of_o suffering_n and_o of_o sorrow_n but_o when_o he_o know_v that_o the_o time_n be_v at_o hand_n when_o he_o must_v offer_v up_o his_o body_n a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n 21_o world_n mat._n 26._o 21_o he_o tell_v his_o disciple_n that_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v betray_v he_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o enemy_n 32_o enemy_n joh._n 16._o 32_o &_o that_o they_o all_o shall_v be_v scatter_v from_o he_o and_o also_o what_o he_o shall_v suffer_v in_o his_o passion_n notwithstanding_o he_o do_v not_o shrink_v from_o it_o but_o do_v willing_o undertake_v it_o because_o it_o be_v his_o father_n will_n to_o have_v it_o so_o wherefore_o he_o do_v arm_v himself_o with_o divine_a patience_n and_o meekness_n to_o suffer_v whatsoever_o be_v appoint_v in_o god_n decree_n shall_v be_v put_v upon_o he_o and_o he_o prepare_v himself_o by_o prayer_n for_o that_o great_a work_n this_o be_v to_o teach_v we_o to_o submit_v with_o all_o meekness_n of_o spirit_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o all_o our_o suffering_n how_o to_o prepare_v ourselves_o for_o they_o and_o how_o to_o demean_v ourselves_o in_o they_o god_n have_v appoint_v every_o man_n some_o work_n to_o do_v and_o when_o one_o work_n be_v finish_v he_o have_v another_o ready_a for_o he_o for_o god_n require_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v diligent_a and_o painful_a in_o our_o calling_n frequent_a in_o holy_a duty_n and_o industrious_a in_o his_o vineyard_n 6_o vineyard_n mat._n 20._o 6_o the_o good_a housholder_n in_o the_o gospel_n rebuke_v those_o that_o do_v stand_v all_o the_o day_n idle_a 49_o idle_a eze._n 16._o 49_o idleness_n be_v one_o of_o the_o sin_n of_o sodom_n which_o bring_v down_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n from_o heaven_n upon_o it_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o property_n of_o a_o good_a wife_n 27_o wife_n pro._n 31._o 27_o that_o she_o look_v well_o to_o the_o way_n of_o her_o household_n and_o eat_v not_o the_o bread_n of_o idleness_n god_n do_v not_o appoint_v to_o every_o one_o their_o work_n alike_o for_o paul_n have_v more_o work_v appoint_v he_o than_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n 28._o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 11._o 28._o for_o the_o care_n of_o all_o the_o church_n come_v daily_o upon_o he_o abraham_n have_v hard_a work_n to_o do_v when_o he_o be_v to_o offer_v up_o his_o only_a son_n to_o god_n than_o any_o of_o the_o patriarch_n if_o god_n appoint_v much_o work_n he_o will_v give_v time_n to_o do_v it_o if_o his_o work_n be_v hard_a strength_n and_o ability_n to_o go_v through_o with_o it_o wherefore_o if_o god_n shall_v call_v we_o to_o any_o hard_a service_n which_o be_v not_o please_v to_o our_o nature_n or_o may_v seem_v impossible_a to_o humane_a strength_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o consult_v with_o flesh_n and_o blood_n what_o to_o do_v but_o to_o be_v obedient_a to_o the_o will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o god_n though_o we_o can_v expect_v no_o outward_a help_n nor_o support_v in_o it_o for_o if_o we_o rest_v upon_o god_n he_o know_v how_o &_o when_o to_o make_v we_o able_a to_o perform_v what_o he_o command_v and_o to_o bear_v what_o he_o lay_v upon_o we_o if_o we_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v assist_v we_o in_o his_o own_o work_n we_o shall_v set_v upon_o it_o with_o good_a courage_n and_o christian_a fortitude_n that_o we_o may_v the_o better_o do_v any_o work_n that_o god_n command_v we_o must_v prepare_v ourselves_o for_o it_o by_o faithful_a prayer_n and_o then_o rest_v upon_o the_o assist_a grace_n of_o god_n with_o steadfast_a hope_n that_o he_o will_v both_o help_v we_o in_o it_o and_o will_v bless_v and_o prosper_v our_o endeavour_n to_o his_o glory_n and_o to_o our_o comfort_n thus_o we_o shall_v do_v every_o day_n in_o the_o work_n of_o our_o call_n but_o chief_o on_o the_o lord_n day_n when_o we_o shall_v spend_v our_o whole_a time_n in_o his_o worship_n and_o service_n now_o let_v our_o heart_n faithful_o meditate_v upon_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n and_o upon_o every_o particular_a that_o he_o suffer_v for_o our_o sake_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v find_v the_o bitterness_n of_o it_o for_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v in_o every_o part_n of_o his_o suffering_n and_o follow_v he_o from_o place_n to_o place_n even_o to_o mount_v calvary_n until_o divine_a justice_n be_v full_o satisfy_v for_o all_o our_o sin_n then_o we_o shall_v embrace_v he_o with_o hearty_a affection_n and_o our_o soul_n will_v rest_v comfort_v in_o the_o assurance_n of_o our_o redemption_n thereby_o of_o christ_n agony_n in_o the_o garden_n the_o hour_n be_v now_o come_v when_o christ_n must_v pay_v the_o whole_a debt_n to_o god_n his_o father_n which_o he_o do_v undertake_v for_o we_o now_o be_v the_o time_n when_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n must_v be_v satisfy_v for_o our_o sin_n now_o do_v god_n deliver_v up_o his_o dear_a son_n to_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n now_o do_v he_o cloud_v the_o bright_a beam_n of_o his_o glorious_a countenance_n from_o he_o and_o leave_v he_o to_o himself_o to_o encounter_v with_o the_o devil_n because_o be_v see_v the_o guilt_n of_o all_o our_o sin_n upon_o he_o and_o now_o do_v the_o devil_n take_v a_o double_a advantage_n against_o our_o dear_a saviour_n and_o with_o all_o his_o power_n and_o malice_n he_o do_v fierce_o set_v upon_o he_o in_o a_o single_a combat_n think_v now_o to_o prevail_v because_o god_n do_v seem_v to_o discountenance_v he_o and_o also_o because_o there_o be_v sin_n and_o that_o very_o great_a which_o be_v lay_v to_o his_o charge_n for_o the_o guilt_n of_o all_o the_o detestable_a and_o abominable_a sin_n of_o all_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n be_v impute_v to_o he_o and_o the_o devil_n know_v how_o odious_a and_o
it_o or_o if_o his_o enemy_n strike_v at_o he_o through_o our_o side_n we_o be_v then_o much_o trouble_v and_o we_o can_v bear_v no_o smart_n for_o he_o though_o he_o do_v sweat_v clot_n of_o blood_n for_o we_o if_o this_o be_v our_o condition_n if_o this_o be_v our_o love_n to_o our_o redeemer_n and_o our_o faithfulness_n to_o our_o saviour_n and_o if_o there_o be_v such_o cowardice_n in_o we_o that_o we_o can_v stand_v for_o he_o we_o do_v then_o discover_v too_o much_o ingratitude_n and_o unthankfulness_n to_o our_o most_o love_a and_o dear_a saviour_n and_o too_o much_o forgetfulness_n of_o his_o great_a goodness_n to_o we_o if_o we_o do_v well_o consider_v how_o bitter_a christ_n agony_n be_v to_o his_o very_a soul_n it_o will_v stir_v we_o up_o to_o magnify_v he_o for_o his_o grace_n and_o goodness_n and_o to_o express_v our_o thankfulness_n to_o his_o praise_n and_o glory_n by_o our_o piety_n in_o the_o duty_n of_o his_o worship_n and_o service_n and_o by_o our_o work_n of_o love_n and_o charity_n to_o his_o saint_n in_o their_o necessity_n for_o if_o we_o comfort_v the_o comfortless_a and_o relieve_v the_o needy_a according_a to_o our_o ability_n for_o his_o sake_n he_o will_v then_o comfort_v we_o when_o we_o be_v in_o any_o sad_a condition_n for_o he_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o true_a consolation_n and_o he_o know_v by_o his_o own_o experience_n how_o great_a a_o burden_n it_o be_v to_o have_v a_o sorrowful_a soul_n according_a to_o this_o of_o the_o wise_a man_n 14._o man_n prov._n 18._o 14._o a_o wound_a spirit_n who_o can_v bear_v but_o if_o we_o hope_v to_o find_v comfort_n in_o our_o grief_n and_o sorrow_n by_o secondary_a mean_n without_o christ_n our_o hope_n will_v deceive_v we_o and_o we_o can_v expect_v comfort_n from_o christ_n unless_o we_o be_v true_o sensible_a of_o the_o burden_n of_o our_o misery_n and_o that_o we_o have_v relation_n to_o he_o by_o faith_n for_o nothing_o can_v comfort_v we_o without_o he_o what_o true_a comfort_n can_v we_o have_v in_o our_o riches_n and_o honour_n if_o we_o do_v not_o enjoy_v christ_n with_o they_o and_o if_o we_o have_v not_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n by_o faith_n in_o he_o and_o by_o our_o true_a repentance_n what_o ease_n can_v the_o best_a physic_n give_v we_o in_o our_o pain_n or_o sickness_n if_o god_n do_v not_o send_v the_o physician_n and_o also_o bless_v the_o physic_n we_o take_v yea_o what_o angel_n can_v comfort_v we_o in_o the_o anguish_n of_o our_o soul_n if_o god_n do_v not_o send_v he_o to_o give_v we_o some_o assurance_n of_o his_o love_n to_o we_o in_o christ_n though_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o in_o sickness_n we_o use_v the_o lawful_a mean_n of_o our_o health_n and_o recovery_n and_o in_o our_o trouble_n to_o use_v the_o mean_n of_o our_o comfort_n and_o deliverance_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o his_o will_n that_o we_o shall_v rest_v upon_o the_o mean_n without_o he_o but_o first_o we_o must_v have_v recourse_n unto_o god_n and_o with_o all_o humble_a reverence_n make_v know_v our_o state_n and_o condition_n to_o he_o and_o withal_o to_o crave_v his_o blessing_n upon_o the_o mean_v we_o shall_v use_v according_a to_o our_o several_a necessity_n and_o thus_o we_o shall_v receive_v from_o god_n what_o we_o desire_v or_o else_o what_o be_v better_o for_o we_o from_o hence_o also_o we_o may_v learn_v by_o the_o example_n of_o our_o gracious_a saviour_n to_o wait_v upon_o god_n for_o comfort_n in_o our_o sorrow_n and_o to_o be_v constant_a in_o our_o prayer_n until_o he_o shall_v be_v please_v to_o return_v we_o a_o gracious_a answer_n for_o 44._o for_o mat._n 26._o 44._o christ_n pray_v three_o time_n in_o his_o agony_n before_o he_o have_v any_o answer_n from_o his_o heavenly_a father_n and_o as_o the_o bitterness_n of_o his_o agony_n do_v increase_v so_o the_o fervency_n and_o zeal_n of_o his_o prayer_n be_v strong_a but_o such_o be_v the_o weakness_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o god_n that_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o give_v over_o wait_v upon_o he_o when_o we_o be_v in_o trouble_n if_o he_o do_v not_o send_v we_o help_v and_o succour_v when_o we_o expect_v it_o neither_o can_v we_o with_o christian_a constancy_n persevere_v in_o our_o prayer_n if_o god_n do_v not_o grant_v our_o request_n at_o our_o own_o time_n and_o according_a to_o our_o own_o desire_n except_o he_o do_v assist_v and_o strengthen_v we_o with_o his_o grace_n and_o holy_a spirit_n for_o it_o be_v god_n peculiar_a work_n to_o corroborate_v our_o mind_n and_o to_o confirm_v our_o heart_n with_o a_o settle_a resolution_n to_o rest_n and_o depend_v upon_o he_o in_o all_o our_o difficulty_n and_o danger_n otherwise_o we_o shall_v soon_o start_v aside_o at_o the_o fear_n of_o every_o temptation_n and_o trouble_n also_o such_o be_v our_o security_n and_o carelessnesse_n that_o we_o regard_v not_o the_o sorrow_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n we_o can_v mourn_v though_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v in_o great_a heaviness_n through_o affliction_n we_o can_v watch_v though_o we_o see_v eminent_a danger_n our_o eye_n be_v so_o dim_a and_o heavy_a that_o we_o can_v see_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n that_o be_v upon_o a_o nation_n or_o upon_o a_o people_n 43._o people_n mat._n 26._o 43._o the_o disciple_n be_v asleep_a when_o christ_n be_v in_o this_o sharp_a agony_n 5_o agony_n jon._n 1._o 4_o 5_o jo●as_n be_v also_o fast_o asleep_a in_o the_o ship_n when_o it_o be_v like_a to_o be_v break_v with_o a_o mighty_a tempest_n thus_o be_v the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n subject_a to_o the_o like_a infirmity_n and_o fail_n through_o the_o frailty_n of_o the_o flesh_n which_o will_v sometime_o prevail_v against_o the_o spiritual_a part_n that_o be_v in_o they_o consider_v further_o that_o as_o the_o first_o adam_n lose_v that_o happiness_n which_o he_o have_v in_o his_o creation_n in_o the_o garden_n of_o eden_n which_o be_v a_o place_n of_o as_o much_o pleasure_n and_o delight_n as_o the_o whole_a earth_n can_v afford_v so_o the_o second_o adam_n christ_n jesus_n our_o dear_a saviour_n begin_v his_o passion_n in_o a_o garden_n to_o repair_v our_o lose_a happiness_n whither_o christ_n do_v often_o resort_v to_o refresh_v himself_o and_o for_o his_o own_o private_a devotion_n and_o yet_o there_o the_o devil_n do_v seduce_v our_o first_o parent_n and_o here_o also_o he_o do_v violent_o assault_v our_o bless_a redeemer_n to_o cause_v the_o one_o to_o fall_v and_o sin_n against_o god_n and_o to_o hinder_v the_o other_o in_o the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n thus_o the_o devil_n lay_v his_o trap_n and_o snare_n in_o our_o lawful_a pleasure_n and_o delight_n to_o catch_v we_o at_o advantage_n and_o to_o make_v we_o sin_n against_o our_o god_n and_o thus_o also_o he_o do_v endeavour_v to_o hinder_v we_o in_o our_o holy_a devotion_n and_o in_o any_o special_a work_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v we_o to_o do_v how_o then_o can_v we_o be_v free_a from_o his_o evil_a suggestion_n and_o how_o can_v we_o be_v secure_a from_o danger_n though_o we_o can_v be_v no_o where_o free_a from_o his_o temptation_n yet_o we_o shall_v be_v preserve_v from_o the_o evil_n of_o they_o if_o we_o keep_v close_o unto_o christ_n by_o a_o true_a and_o sincere_a faith_n though_o the_o devil_n be_v most-malicious_o bend_v to_o do_v we_o hurt_v yet_o christ_n will_v restrain_v his_o power_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o do_v so_o much_o as_o his_o malicious_a will_n desire_v 29._o desire_v isa_n 37._o 29._o for_o he_o will_v put_v a_o hock_v in_o his_o nose_n and_o a_o bridle_n in_o his_o lip_n to_o pull_v he_o back_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o hurt_v our_o soul_n though_o he_o may_v be_v permit_v to_o afflict_v our_o body_n wherefore_o this_o be_v our_o singular_a comfort_n that_o if_o the_o devil_n be_v any_o way_n too_o subtle_a or_o too_o strong_a for_o we_o christ_n will_v give_v we_o heavenly_a wisdom_n to_o prevent_v his_o subtlety_n and_o strength_n of_o grace_n to_o overcome_v his_o power_n if_o the_o devil_n do_v suggest_v into_o we_o fear_n and_o doubt_n of_o our_o salvation_n to_o afflict_v our_o mind_n to_o disquiet_v the_o peace_n of_o our_o conscience_n or_o to_o perplex_v our_o soul_n christ_n will_v sweet_o refresh_v and_o comfort_v we_o with_o more_o assurance_n thereof_o by_o faith_n also_o if_o he_o do_v call_v our_o sin_n to_o remembrance_n and_o do_v lay_v they_o before_o we_o with_o their_o several_a aggravation_n to_o affright_v and_o terrify_v we_o and_o to_o drive_v we_o into_o despair_n christ_n will_v show_v we_o the_o clot_n of_o blood_n which_o he_o do_v sweat_n in_o his_o agony_n for_o our_o sake_n and_o the_o wound_n that_o be_v make_v in_o his_o body_n that_o our_o sin_n may_v
blasphemous_a word_n and_o cruel_a torment_n upon_o the_o cross_n even_o to_o the_o pour_v out_o of_o his_o very_a heart_n blood_n to_o purge_v and_o cleanse_v we_o from_o the_o guilt_n and_o from_o the_o filth_n of_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o that_o he_o suffer_v whatsoever_o the_o malice_n and_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n can_v inflict_v upon_o he_o and_o also_o that_o for_o the_o time_n his_o divine_a nature_n do_v refuse_v to_o minister_v comfort_n to_o his_o humanity_n in_o these_o his_o bitter_a torment_n what_o thankfulness_n then_o do_v we_o owe_v to_o our_o dear_a saviour_n for_o his_o wonderful_a love_n to_o we_o what_o can_v be_v too_o dear_a for_o he_o that_o do_v account_v nothing_o too_o dear_a for_o we_o what_o duty_n what_o reverence_n and_o fear_n do_v we_o owe_v unto_o he_o who_o have_v pay_v so_o great_a a_o price_n for_o our_o redemption_n our_o best_a expression_n of_o love_n and_o duty_n be_v no_o way_n answerable_a to_o that_o which_o christ_n have_v deserve_v and_o which_o we_o be_v sound_v to_o perform_v unto_o he_o yet_o if_o they_o come_v from_o a_o willing_a mind_n and_o from_o a_o sincere_a heart_n christ_n our_o saviour_n will_v accept_v they_o and_o out_o of_o his_o fullness_n will_v supply_v what_o be_v want_v in_o we_o and_o god_n will_v be_v well_o please_v with_o it_o for_o his_o sake_n here_o be_v much_o matter_n of_o heavenly_a comfort_n for_o we_o if_o our_o heart_n can_v devout_o meditate_v upon_o it_o and_o receive_v it_o our_o life_n may_v be_v full_a of_o misery_n and_o our_o heart_n full_a of_o sadness_n and_o perplexity_n our_o faith_n may_v be_v so_o weak_a that_o we_o can_v have_v no_o apprehension_n of_o the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o our_o spirit_n may_v be_v so_o cast_v down_o that_o we_o can_v raise_v they_o up_o towards_o heaven_n we_o may_v be_v press_v with_o trouble_n cross_n and_o sorrow_n beyond_o our_o strength_n and_o the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n may_v be_v so_o eclipse_v that_o we_o can_v see_v no_o token_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o favour_n to_o sweeten_v the_o bitterness_n of_o our_o suffering_n and_o to_o support_v we_o under_o the_o pressure_n of_o they_o but_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o faint_v and_o to_o cast_v off_o all_o hope_n of_o relief_n and_o comfort_n 11._o comfort_n psal_n 42._o 11._o but_o for_o all_o this_o we_o need_v not_o fear_v our_o soul_n need_v not_o be_v disquiet_v within_o we_o for_o if_o we_o wait_v on_o god_n he_o will_v be_v our_o present_a help_n he_o will_v be_v our_o god_n and_o he_o will_v not_o forsake_v we_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o countenance_n may_v be_v darken_v for_o a_o few_o hour_n as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o sun_n at_o this_o very_a same_o time_n 2._o time_n mal._n 4._o 2._o but_o the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n will_v again_o appear_v to_o we_o with_o heal_v in_o his_o wing_n then_o we_o shall_v see_v the_o salvation_n of_o the_o lord_n if_o we_o can_v look_v up_o with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n to_o our_o sweet_a saviour_n who_o be_v bring_v to_o a_o low_a degree_n of_o spiritual_a desertion_n in_o the_o apprehension_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n than_o we_o can_v be_v and_o yet_o he_o find_v a_o return_n of_o the_o gracious_a aspect_n of_o his_o father_n countenance_n towards_o he_o whereby_o he_o have_v sanctify_v and_o sweeten_v whatsoever_o can_v betide_v we_o to_o sink_v our_o spirit_n or_o to_o shake_v our_o faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o god_n if_o our_o ear_n be_v spiritual_o bore_v to_o hear_v those_o doleful_a and_o lamentable_a word_n which_o our_o saviour_n utter_v upon_o the_o cross_n when_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o yield_v up_o his_o spirit_n to_o god_n his_o father_n and_o yet_o apply_v they_o to_o ourselves_o by_o faith_n we_o may_v then_o draw_v virtue_n and_o power_n from_o they_o to_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n and_o to_o support_v our_o hope_n in_o the_o assurance_n of_o his_o love_n that_o he_o will_v not_o bring_v we_o to_o so_o low_a a_o degree_n of_o spiritual_a desertion_n because_o our_o weakness_n will_v not_o bear_v so_o great_a a_o trial_n but_o will_v make_v we_o to_o hold_v out_o to_o the_o end_n by_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n now_o learn_v o_o my_o sorrowful_a soul_n so_o to_o imprint_v the_o crucify_a of_o thy_o dear_a saviour_n in_o thy_o heart_n by_o faith_n that_o thou_o may_v draw_v grace_n and_o virtue_n from_o thence_o to_o crucify_v all_o thy_o corruption_n and_o the_o evil_a concupiscence_n of_o thy_o flesh_n that_o thy_o affection_n may_v not_o be_v carry_v after_o worldly_a vanity_n that_o thy_o eye_n may_v not_o delight_v to_o gaze_v upon_o obscene_a spectacle_n that_o thy_o ear_n may_v be_v dull_a to_o unsavoury_a speech_n but_o swift_a to_o hear_v word_n that_o tend_v to_o edification_n and_o that_o thy_o tongue_n may_v have_v no_o motion_n to_o utter_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v dishonourable_a to_o god_n or_o hurtful_a to_o thy_o neighbour_n 14._o neighbour_n gal._n 6._o 14._o thus_o by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n crucify_v the_o world_n shall_v be_v crucify_v to_o thou_o and_o thou_o unto_o the_o world_n if_o thou_o do_v true_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v crucify_v for_o thou_o because_o it_o will_v dull_v the_o edge_n of_o thy_o affection_n to_o all_o earthly_a thing_n it_o will_v work_v in_o thou_o a_o hatred_n and_o detestation_n of_o all_o sinful_a pleasure_n and_o thou_o will_v daily_o labour_v and_o 22._o and_o col._n 3._o 9_o eph._n 4._o 22._o strive_v to_o mortify_v the_o old_a man_n of_o sin_n that_o have_v have_v his_o habitation_n in_o thy_o bosom_n above_o these_o threescore_o year_n in_o thy_o first_o creation_n thou_o be_v a_o lovely_a creature_n belove_v of_o thy_o god_n without_o spot_n or_o blemish_n in_o soul_n or_o in_o body_n thou_o be_v beautify_v and_o adorn_v with_o all_o grace_n and_o holy_a virtue_n reverence_v and_o obey_v of_o all_o other_o creature_n here_o upon_o earth_n and_o the_o celestial_a orb_n do_v cast_v no_o evil_a aspect_n upon_o thou_o but_o now_o thou_o be_v deform_v with_o sin_n thou_o be_v pollute_v in_o all_o the_o faculty_n of_o thy_o soul_n and_o in_o all_o the_o part_n of_o thy_o body_n for_o thou_o be_v spiritual_o blind_a naked_a and_o void_a of_o all_o goodness_n thou_o be_v deaf_a and_o dumb_a to_o heavenly_a thing_n thou_o be_v lame_a and_o impotent_a and_o can_v not_o walk_v in_o the_o path_n of_o righteousness_n also_o thou_o be_v so_o bend_v and_o bow_v to_o the_o earth_n that_o thou_o can_v not_o raise_v up_o thy_o heart_n towards_o heaven_n and_o so_o full_a of_o spiritual_a disease_n and_o infirmity_n that_o there_o be_v no_o sound_a part_n in_o thou_o but_o this_o be_v thy_o comfort_n o_o my_o soul_n that_o the_o blood_n of_o thy_o crucify_a redeemer_n which_o be_v spill_v upon_o the_o cross_n will_v take_v away_o all_o thy_o deformity_n of_o sin_n and_o will_v heal_v all_o thy_o spiritual_a disease_n and_o his_o righteousness_n will_v make_v thou_o lovely_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n if_o this_o be_v our_o condition_n by_o nature_n if_o we_o be_v thus_o deform_v with_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n that_o cleave_v to_o our_o soul_n by_o our_o fall_n in_o adam_n and_o if_o we_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o regain_v our_o first_o happiness_n in_o adam_n first_o innocency_n but_o by_o christ_n and_o to_o be_v cleanse_v from_o all_o our_o sin_n but_o by_o his_o blood_n then_o our_o chief_a care_n must_v be_v how_o to_o enjoy_v christ_n and_o how_o to_o have_v this_o great_a benefit_n by_o his_o blood_n if_o we_o be_v ingraft_v into_o he_o by_o faith_n we_o shall_v enjoy_v he_o in_o his_o whole_a nature_n as_o he_o be_v god_n and_o man_n we_o shall_v partake_v with_o he_o in_o all_o his_o excellency_n and_o grace_n he_o will_v work_v a_o new_a creation_n in_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n and_o a_o thorough_a change_n in_o all_o the_o faculty_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o in_o all_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n that_o no_o sin_n shall_v cleave_v to_o our_o soul_n for_o our_o condemnation_n for_o he_o will_v also_o nail_v the_o the_o guilt_n of_o all_o our_o sin_n to_o his_o cross_n upon_o which_o he_o shed_v his_o most_o precious_a blood_n to_o make_v a_o atonement_n for_o they_o all_o he_o will_v also_o take_v away_o the_o stain_n and_o filth_n of_o our_o sin_n by_o his_o sanctify_a grace_n and_o holy_a spirit_n and_o will_v put_v upon_o we_o the_o robe_n of_o his_o own_o righteousness_n which_o will_v cover_v all_o our_o deformity_n and_o will_v make_v we_o amiable_a and_o lovely_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n blood_n our_o sin_n shall_v never_o be_v lay_v to_o our_o charge_n by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o death_n we_o be_v make_v able_a
to_o mortify_v and_o kill_v the_o power_n of_o sin_n in_o we_o and_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o resurrection_n will_v quicken_v we_o up_o to_o newness_n of_o life_n and_o his_o righteousness_n will_v restore_v we_o to_o a_o high_a degree_n of_o purity_n and_o holiness_n than_o we_o have_v in_o our_o first_o creation_n 27._o creation_n gal._n 3._o 27._o for_o by_o faith_n we_o be_v baptize_v into_o christ_n and_o have_v put_v on_o christ_n 30._o christ_n eph._n 5._o 30._o and_o we_o be_v now_o member_n of_o his_o body_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o of_o his_o bone_n and_o we_o be_v confirm_v in_o this_o bless_a condition_n by_o his_o free_a spirit_n so_o that_o we_o shall_v never_o depart_v from_o he_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o be_v crucify_v and_o his_o blood_n pour_v out_o upon_o the_o cross_n and_o if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v make_v a_o curse_n for_o we_o by_o that_o kind_n of_o death_n then_o god_n decree_n have_v not_o be_v fulfil_v the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n have_v not_o be_v finish_v we_o have_v be_v still_o under_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n have_v still_o rest_v upon_o our_o soul_n and_o all_o the_o prophecy_n of_o he_o have_v not_o be_v fulfil_v also_o we_o can_v not_o have_v have_v all_o those_o great_a benefit_n by_o his_o death_n and_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n 8._o blood_n phil._n 2._o 8._o but_o christ_n do_v humble_v himself_o to_o the_o curse_a death_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o there_o his_o heart_n blood_n be_v pour_v out_o which_o make_v his_o sacrifice_n complete_a and_o perfect_a this_o make_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o penitent_a thief_n so_o famous_a because_o he_o do_v embrace_v christ_n for_o his_o saviour_n when_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o cross_n 4._o cross_n 1_o cor._n 2_o 2_o 4._o this_o make_v paul_n to_o prefer_v the_o knowledge_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o he_o crucify_v before_o all_o humane_a wisdom_n because_o thereby_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v make_v his_o preach_v powerful_a and_o effectual_a 14_o effectual_a gal._n 6._o 14_o and_o this_o make_v he_o glory_n so_o much_o in_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n wherefore_o we_o need_v not_o be_v ashamed_a of_o christ_n because_o he_o be_v crucify_v and_o we_o need_v not_o refuse_v to_o bear_v his_o cross_n after_o he_o because_o it_o be_v the_o great_a honour_n of_o a_o true_a christian_a and_o that_o which_o bring_v the_o great_a comfort_n to_o our_o soul_n to_o be_v make_v conformable_a to_o christ_n in_o his_o suffering_n now_o we_o come_v to_o consider_v what_o admirable_a gentleness_n what_o great_a mercy_n and_o goodness_n christ_n do_v show_v to_o his_o persecutor_n and_o torment_n he_o do_v practice_v the_o same_o doctrine_n which_o he_o teach_v his_o disciple_n in_o the_o mount_n 44._o mount_n mat._n 5._o 44._o love_v your_o enemy_n bless_v they_o that_o curse_v you_o do_v good_a to_o they_o that_o hate_v you_o and_o pray_v for_o they_o that_o despiteful_o use_v you_o and_o persecute_v you_o for_o he_o give_v they_o not_o a_o bitter_a word_n but_o do_v patient_o and_o meek_o suffer_v all_o their_o barbarous_a usage_n and_o cruelty_n against_o he_o and_o when_o their_o heart_n be_v inflame_v with_o malice_n and_o their_o hand_n labour_v to_o crucify_v he_o and_o when_o the_o pang_n of_o death_n be_v upon_o he_o his_o tender_a heart_n be_v move_v with_o compassion_n towards_o they_o and_o the_o fountain_n of_o his_o mercy_n be_v open_v that_o the_o sweet_a stream_n of_o his_o blessing_n may_v flow_v upon_o they_o for_o even_o then_o he_o do_v pray_v his_o heavenly_a father_n to_o remit_v and_o and_o forgive_v their_o great_a sin_n 34._o sin_n luk._n 23._o 34._o father_n say_v he_o forgive_v they_o for_o they_o know_v not_o what_o they_o do_v for_o they_o be_v spiritual_o blind_a and_o can_v not_o see_v who_o he_o be_v and_o their_o heart_n be_v harden_v that_o they_o can_v not_o understand_v nor_o believe_v from_o whence_o he_o come_v and_o wherefore_o he_o suffer_v they_o to_o put_v he_o to_o such_o a_o shameful_a and_o cruel_a death_n if_o our_o dear_a saviour_n be_v so_o merciful_a to_o those_o that_o brew_v their_o hand_n in_o his_o blood_n what_o heart_n can_v then_o conceive_v the_o riches_n of_o his_o mercy_n and_o love_n to_o his_o own_o servant_n that_o love_v serve_v and_o obey_v he_o in_o truth_n and_o with_o upright_a heart_n for_o mercy_n and_o tender_a love_n be_v essential_o and_o natural_o inherent_a in_o he_o and_o there_o be_v no_o end_n of_o his_o goodness_n to_o all_o those_o that_o be_v long_o unto_o he_o his_o mercy_n to_o they_o go_v along_o in_o all_o his_o work_n for_o if_o he_o do_v correct_v they_o it_o be_v in_o mercy_n for_o their_o good_a he_o will_v not_o let_v the_o rod_n go_v out_o of_o his_o own_o hand_n to_o some_o he_o do_v but_o shake_v the_o rod_n other_o feel_v but_o few_o stripe_n and_o though_o some_o have_v many_o stripe_n 2._o stripe_n jer._n 10._o 2._o yet_o it_o shall_v be_v with_o judgement_n not_o in_o his_o anger_n he_o will_v not_o deal_v with_o they_o according_a to_o their_o sin_n nor_o reward_v they_o according_a to_o their_o iniquity_n but_o his_o mercy_n will_v prevail_v though_o his_o justice_n be_v provoke_v wherefore_o let_v no_o poor_a afflict_a soul_n that_o be_v under_o his_o rod_n forbear_v come_v unto_o christ_n for_o he_o can_v take_v off_o his_o visitation_n when_o he_o please_v and_o he_o will_v pity_v he_o as_o a_o father_n pity_v his_o child_n also_o let_v no_o poor_a sinner_n that_o be_v true_o humble_v for_o his_o sin_n be_v afraid_a to_o have_v recourse_n unto_o his_o redeemer_n for_o he_o pray_v for_o such_o to_o procure_v their_o pardon_n and_o to_o bring_v salvation_n to_o their_o soul_n all_o the_o riches_n honour_n and_o pleasure_n that_o the_o world_n afford_v can_v give_v a_o sinful_a soul_n no_o true_a consolation_n if_o he_o be_v trouble_v and_o perplex_v for_o his_o sin_n they_o be_v all_o miserable_a comforter_n when_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n lie_v upon_o the_o conscience_n true_a comfort_n and_o fullness_n of_o joy_n be_v to_o be_v find_v only_o in_o christ_n and_o in_o he_o crucify_v for_o he_o will_v take_v away_o the_o guilt_n of_o his_o sin_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o molest_v or_o trouble_v his_o conscience_n he_o will_v help_v he_o bear_v his_o sorrow_n with_o a_o content_a patience_n he_o will_v stand_v by_o he_o and_o intercede_v for_o he_o that_o in_o his_o temptation_n and_o trial_n his_o faith_n may_v not_o fail_v he_o 8._o rev._n 7._o 17_o isa_n 25._o 8._o and_o at_o last_o he_o will_v wipe_v away_o all_o tear_n from_o his_o eye_n all_o this_o and_o much_o more_o christ_n will_v do_v for_o we_o for_o he_o will_v also_o stand_v for_o we_o against_o all_o the_o accusation_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v they_o true_a or_o false_a if_o they_o be_v true_a he_o will_v present_v his_o own_o merit_n to_o his_o father_n in_o satisfaction_n for_o we_o if_o they_o be_v false_a he_o will_v give_v the_o devil_n a_o shameful_a repulse_n and_o will_v curb_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o hurt_v we_o 12._o we_o 1_o john_n 2._o 12._o for_o christ_n jesus_n the_o righteous_a be_v our_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n consider_v in_o the_o next_o place_n that_o christ_n do_v now_o put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n for_o the_o type_n and_o shadow_n do_v cease_v when_o he_o be_v slay_v because_o he_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o all_o those_o ceremony_n and_o sacrifice_n this_o be_v the_o last_o ceremony_n which_o be_v to_o be_v fulfil_v 12._o fulfil_v heb._n 13._o 11_o 12._o that_o the_o body_n of_o those_o beast_n who_o blood_n be_v to_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o sanctuary_n by_o the_o high_a priest_n for_o sin_n be_v burn_v without_o the_o camp_n this_o ceremony_n christ_n fulfil_v when_o he_o shed_v his_o blood_n without_o the_o gate_n that_o he_o may_v sanctify_v the_o people_n with_o his_o own_o blood_n for_o both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n be_v now_o gather_v together_o at_o mount_n calvary_n where_o christ_n die_v that_o the_o people_n of_o all_o nation_n may_v be_v sanctify_v with_o his_o blood_n if_o they_o come_v unto_o he_o by_o faith_n to_o be_v cleanse_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o purify_v from_o their_o pollution_n with_o his_o sanctify_a grace_n wherefore_o now_o though_o we_o be_v alien_n and_o stranger_n to_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n yet_o nothing_o hinder_v but_o that_o we_o may_v go_v forth_o bold_o unto_o he_o who_o finish_v our_o redemption_n by_o his_o death_n without_o the_o gate_n that_o thereby_o he_o may_v sanctify_v the_o gentile_n with_o his_o blood_n as_o he_o do_v the_o
prophecy_n be_v then_o fulfil_v that_o be_v speak_v of_o he_o in_o his_o life_n 46._o life_n luk._n 23._o 46._o then_o he_o commend_v his_o spirit_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o father_n and_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n as_o this_o lamb_n of_o god_n live_v in_o perfect_a innocency_n so_o he_o die_v in_o perfect_a meekness_n then_o present_o after_o 34_o after_o joh._n 19_o 34_o one_o of_o the_o soldier_n pierce_v his_o side_n with_o a_o spear_n to_o his_o very_a heart_n and_o forthwith_o c●me_v thereout_o blood_n and_o water_n that_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v fulfil_v 10._o fulfil_v zech._n 12_o 10._o they_o shall_v look_v on_o he_o who_o they_o pierce_v this_o be_v also_o do_v that_o we_o may_v faithful_o believe_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o death_n this_o be_v a_o special_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o we_o must_v steadfast_o believe_v if_o we_o will_v have_v comfort_n in_o the_o assurance_n of_o our_o redemption_n for_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o true_o dye_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n have_v not_o be_v full_o satisfy_v for_o our_o sin_n we_o can_v have_v have_v no_o power_n to_o die_v unto_o sin_n or_o to_o mortify_v our_o corruption_n and_o sinful_a lust_n and_o death_n will_v be_v most_o bitter_a fearful_a and_o terrible_a to_o we_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o dye_v and_o rise_v again_o how_o can_v death_n have_v be_v destroy_v how_o can_v the_o sting_n of_o death_n be_v take_v out_o who_o shall_v have_v sanctify_v death_n unto_o we_o and_o how_o can_v we_o be_v willing_a to_o embrace_v it_o wherefore_o if_o we_o do_v true_o believe_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o he_o die_v for_o we_o it_o will_v minister_v much_o matter_n of_o exceed_v great_a consolation_n to_o our_o soul_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o our_o dissolution_n from_o the_o former_a consideration_n we_o may_v draw_v much_o comfortable_a matter_n for_o our_o heart_n to_o meditate_v upon_o first_o it_o do_v evident_o appear_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v assume_v to_o his_o deity_n our_o whole_a nature_n soul_n and_o body_n which_o do_v still_o retain_v all_o the_o property_n of_o humane_a nature_n unconfound_v with_o his_o deity_n 17_o deity_n heb._n 2._o 17_o he_o be_v like_a unto_o we_o in_o all_o thing_n 25._o thing_n heb_fw-mi 4._o 25._o sin_n only_o except_v his_o soul_n be_v sensible_a of_o grief_n and_o sorrow_n his_o body_n do_v feel_v the_o smart_n of_o pain_n he_o be_v subject_a to_o all_o our_o natural_a passion_n and_o infirmity_n which_o may_v be_v without_o sin_n he_o be_v sensible_a of_o hunger_n thirst_n weariness_n and_o the_o like_a he_o be_v also_o subject_a to_o mortality_n though_o not_o to_o corruption_n for_o 10_o for_o psal_n 16._o 10_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v his_o holy_a one_o to_o see_v corruption_n because_o he_o have_v no_o spot_n or_o stain_v of_o sin_n in_o he_o and_o there_o be_v a_o true_a dissolution_n of_o his_o soul_n from_o his_o body_n when_o he_o die_v if_o christ_n have_v not_o assume_v our_o whole_a nature_n he_o can_v not_o have_v perfect_o save_v and_o redeem_v we_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o then_o the_o work_n which_o god_n send_v he_o to_o do_v have_v not_o be_v finish_v but_o we_o have_v still_o remain_v in_o our_o sin_n 10_o heb._n 10._o 10_o but_o the_o whole_a work_n of_o our_o redemption_n be_v full_o wrought_v by_o that_o which_o he_o suffer_v both_o in_o his_o soul_n and_o in_o his_o body_n to_o give_v we_o a_o holy_a assurance_n that_o we_o be_v free_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n here_o and_o save_v from_o the_o condemn_a power_n of_o sin_n hereafter_o second_o we_o may_v learn_v from_o thence_o this_o instruction_n so_o to_o regulate_v our_o thirsty_a desire_n that_o they_o may_v be_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o not_o for_o own_o sinful_a end_n if_o we_o thirst_v after_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o world_n for_o any_o other_o end_n than_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n our_o thirst_n be_v sinful_a and_o it_o will_v be_v satisfy_v with_o vinegar_n or_o gall_n and_o if_o we_o thirst_v after_o blood_n rapine_n or_o revenge_n the_o end_n of_o these_o and_o the_o like_a thirsty_a desire_n will_v be_v the_o death_n of_o our_o soul_n but_o if_o our_o thirst_n be_v holy_a and_o heavenly_a we_o shall_v then_o have_v thirsty_a desire_n and_o holy_a endeavour_n 613._o endeavour_n isal_n 613._o how_o to_o enjoy_v god_n and_o to_o do_v his_o will_n how_o to_o preserve_v our_o neighbour_n safety_n and_o how_o to_o keep_v ourselves_o undefiled_a and_o if_o we_o can_v say_v as_o david_n do_v 6._o do_v psal_n 143._o 6._o my_o soul_n thirst_v after_o thou_o o_o lord_n as_o a_o thirsty_a land_n then_o our_o thirst_n shall_v be_v quench_v and_o our_o soul_n shall_v be_v refresh_v with_o the_o sweet_a comfort_n of_o god_n also_o if_o we_o thirst_v after_o christ_n jesus_n who_o be_v the_o chief_a honour_n of_o a_o christian_a and_o after_o grace_n and_o godliness_n which_o be_v the_o true_a riches_n of_o the_o soul_n then_o christ_n will_v be_v a_o fountain_n of_o live_a water_n to_o we_o which_o only_o can_v quench_v our_o spiritual_a 10._o o_o joh._n 4._o 10._o thirst_n and_o refresh_v our_o pant_a soul_n and_o it_o shall_v spring_v up_o in_o we_o to_o everlasting_a life_n christ_n call_v every_o one_o to_o drink_v of_o this_o water_n 37_o water_n john_n 7._o 37_o be_v any_o man_n thirst_n let_v he_o come_v unto_o i_o and_o drink_n thus_o say_v the_o prophet_n 1._o prophet_n isa_n 55._o 1._o ho_o every_o one_o that_o thirst_v come_v you_o to_o the_o water_n and_o you_o that_o have_v no_o silver_n come_v buy_v and_o eat_v come_v i_o say_v buy_v wine_n and_o milk_n without_o silver_n and_o without_o money_n here_o christ_n offer_v himself_o and_o his_o grace_n free_o but_o to_o who_o it_o be_v only_o to_o such_o as_o have_v a_o spiritual_a thirst_n after_o he_o wherefore_o if_o this_o be_v the_o thirst_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o enjoy_v christ_n and_o he_o crucify_v we_o shall_v see_v such_o a_o fountain_n of_o water_n of_o life_n flow_v out_o of_o his_o bless_a fide_fw-la as_o will_v purify_v our_o heart_n from_o all_o sin_n and_o cleanse_v our_o conscience_n from_o all_o iniquity_n whereby_o our_o thirsty_a soul_n will_v be_v more_o comfort_v and_o refresh_v than_o our_o body_n can_v be_v by_o any_o fountain_n of_o water_n in_o our_o natural_a thirst_n 42._o thirst_n psal_n 42._o this_o holy_a thirst_n make_v david_n soul_n pant_v more_o after_o god_n than_o the_o hart_n pant_v after_o the_o water-brook_n three_o from_o this_o consideration_n that_o christ_n have_v vinegar_n give_v he_o in_o a_o sponge_n we_o may_v learn_v this_o profitable_a doctrine_n that_o there_o be_v no_o content_n nor_o stability_n in_o any_o earthly_a thing_n for_o though_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v all_o the_o contentment_n that_o the_o world_n can_v give_v we_o yet_o it_o will_v not_o satisfy_v our_o desire_n something_o will_v be_v want_v and_o we_o shall_v still_o thirst_v after_o more_o and_o we_o shall_v find_v soureness_n and_o bitterness_n in_o the_o best_a of_o earthly_a thing_n also_o that_o which_o we_o do_v possess_v we_o have_v it_o but_o in_o a_o sponge_n a_o sudden_a casualty_n by_o fire_n or_o water_n a_o word_n speak_v against_o king_n or_o state_n will_v wring_v it_o out_o a_o little_a pain_n or_o sickness_n a_o little_a trouble_n or_o sorrow_n will_v soon_o blast_n the_o comfort_n of_o of_o it_o and_o make_v it_o like_o vinegar_n to_o our_o taste_n if_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o nothing_o to_o embitter_v or_o blast_v our_o earthly_a joy_n yet_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n they_o be_v transitory_a and_o unstable_a 1._o unstable_a eccl._n 12._o 1._o and_o when_o old_a age_n come_v we_o shall_v take_v no_o pleasure_n in_o they_o and_o death_n will_v quite_o bereave_v we_o of_o they_o all_o now_o than_o if_o we_o put_v our_o trust_n in_o these_o vain_a thing_n they_o will_v deceive_v and_o will_v give_v we_o no_o solid_a comfort_n except_o we_o do_v enjoy_v they_o in_o christ_n for_o without_o he_o the_o best_a of_o all_o earthly_a blessing_n be_v but_o vanity_n and_o vexation_n of_o spirit_n wherefore_o let_v this_o be_v our_o great_a care_n our_o chief_a joy_n and_o the_o desire_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o enjoy_v christ_n to_o be_v join_v unto_o he_o with_o the_o bond_n of_o faith_n and_o love_n and_o than_o whatsoever_o our_o estate_n or_o condition_n be_v we_o shall_v find_v comfort_n in_o it_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v it_o with_o a_o good_a conscience_n we_o shall_v glorify_v god_n with_o it_o and_o if_o we_o do_v casual_o lose_v it_o we_o shall_v lose_v nothing_o by_o it_o for_o we_o shall_v still_o enjoy_v christ_n who_o will_v abundant_o recompense_v our_o earthly_a loss_n with_o spiritual_a comfort_n here_o and_o with_o a_o eternal_a
inheritance_n hereafter_o four_o when_o death_n come_v near_o to_o we_o we_o have_v most_o need_v of_o the_o best_a comfort_n both_o for_o soul_n and_o body_n that_o we_o may_v the_o more_o strong_o encounter_v with_o this_o terrible_a enemy_n in_o the_o dissolution_n of_o our_o soul_n from_o our_o body_n but_o christ_n at_o this_o time_n have_v sour_a vinegar_n give_v he_o which_o can_v no_o way_n comfort_v he_o but_o rather_o aggravate_v his_o pain_n and_o sorrow_n when_o he_o be_v every_o way_n in_o great_a extremity_n this_o do_v fit_o resemble_v the_o case_n of_o many_o of_o god_n dear_a servant_n for_o they_o be_v often_o trouble_v and_o perplex_v with_o many_o fear_n doubt_n temptation_n and_o evil_a suggestion_n of_o the_o devil_n when_o they_o be_v to_o enter_v into_o a_o single_a combat_n with_o death_n itself_o for_o than_o he_o will_v lay_v their_o sin_n before_o they_o with_o all_o the_o aggravation_n that_o may_v be_v and_o he_o will_v labour_v to_o hide_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n from_o they_o that_o they_o may_v have_v no_o hope_n or_o comfort_n to_o support_v they_o in_o this_o great_a conflict_n which_o do_v put_v they_o into_o trouble_n of_o mind_n grief_n of_o heart_n and_o anguish_n of_o spirit_n and_o it_o be_v more_o uncomfortable_a and_o unpleasing_a to_o their_o spiritual_a taste_n than_o any_o vinegar_n can_v be_v to_o the_o palate_n then_o be_v the_o time_n when_o the_o devil_n be_v most_o malicious_o bend_v against_o they_o than_o do_v he_o bestir_v himself_o to_o trouble_v the_o peace_n of_o their_o conscience_n to_o disquiet_v the_o tranquillity_n of_o their_o mind_n and_o to_o keep_v they_o from_o the_o assurance_n of_o the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n to_o they_o in_o christ_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o comfortable_o resign_v up_o their_o soul_n unto_o god_n he_o will_v affright_v they_o with_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n with_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o sin_n with_o the_o hypocrisy_n of_o their_o heart_n with_o their_o infidelity_n and_o unbelief_n he_o will_v labour_v to_o keep_v the_o gracious_a promise_n of_o god_n from_o they_o or_o else_o to_o persuade_v they_o that_o they_o belong_v not_o unto_o they_o that_o so_o they_o shall_v have_v no_o comfortable_a assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o their_o sin_n also_o he_o will_v terrify_v they_o with_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n justice_n and_o with_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o dreadful_a day_n of_o judgement_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o drive_v they_o into_o despair_n but_o here_o be_v comfort_n for_o a_o poor_a sinner_n that_o it_o be_v thus_o assault_v by_o the_o devil_n when_o he_o be_v near_o his_o departure_n out_o of_o this_o life_n or_o at_o any_o other_o time_n that_o christ_n have_v sanctify_v all_o these_o sorrow_n and_o conflict_n to_o he_o and_o he_o will_v confirm_v his_o faith_n and_o establish_v his_o hope_n upon_o his_o true_a humiliation_n for_o his_o sin_n and_o then_o those_o fear_n and_o doubt_n will_v vanish_v away_o for_o he_o know_v that_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o resist_v such_o temptation_n and_o the_o weakness_n of_o our_o spirit_n and_o of_o body_n be_v such_o that_o we_o can_v withstand_v such_o strong_a assault_n and_o therefore_o christ_n will_v give_v most_o strength_n to_o our_o inward_a man_n when_o the_o outward_a man_n be_v most_o weak_a and_o he_o will_v most_o weaken_v the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n when_o his_o malice_n be_v strong_a to_o do_v we_o hurt_v and_o though_o we_o may_v be_v dangerous_o foil_v in_o these_o spiritual_a combat_n yet_o christ_n will_v uphold_v our_o faith_n he_o will_v give_v we_o spiritual_a consolation_n and_o will_v speak_v peace_n to_o our_o soul_n and_o conscience_n when_o through_o weakness_n of_o body_n we_o can_v express_v the_o joy_n and_o comfort_n of_o it_o five_o before_o we_o can_v willing_o leave_v this_o world_n we_o must_v be_v well_o persuade_v that_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v a_o better_a habitation_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v which_o holy_a persuasion_n that_o we_o may_v have_v we_o must_v serious_o consider_v how_o we_o have_v do_v the_o work_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v we_o how_o we_o have_v improve_v the_o talon_n that_o he_o have_v lend_v we_o how_o we_o have_v glorify_v god_n in_o our_o call_n and_o what_o good_a we_o have_v do_v to_o our_o neighbour_n according_a to_o the_o mean_n and_o ability_n that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o for_o we_o must_v give_v a_o account_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n before_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o god_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v judge_v according_a to_o our_o work_n wherefore_o if_o we_o can_v true_o say_v that_o we_o have_v do_v god_n work_n to_o the_o best_a of_o our_o power_n &_o with_o a_o upright_a heart_n and_o that_o we_o have_v well_o improve_v our_o time_n and_o our_o talon_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n than_o we_o may_v say_v with_o christ_n it_o be_v finish_v and_o with_o paul_n 8_o paul_n 2_o tim._n 7._o 8_o i_o have_v finish_v my_o course_n and_o have_v keep_v the_o faith_n henceforth_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o i_o a_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n which_o the_o lord_n the_o righteous_a judge_n shall_v give_v i_o at_o that_o day_n and_o not_o to_o i_o only_o but_o unto_o all_o they_o also_o that_o love_n his_o appear_v and_o though_o our_o work_n have_v be_v very_o imperfect_o do_v by_o we_o yet_o christ_n our_o saviour_n will_v make_v it_o perfect_a by_o that_o which_o he_o have_v do_v for_o we_o in_o our_o nature_n and_o god_n will_v accept_v it_o for_o his_o sake_n then_o we_o shall_v cheerful_o resign_v up_o our_o soul_n to_o god_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o our_o dissolution_n six_o christ_n do_v here_o teach_v we_o to_o commend_v our_o soul_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n we_o receive_v they_o immediate_o from_o god_n and_o therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o resign_v they_o up_o again_o unto_o he_o he_o breathe_v into_o we_o the_o breath_n of_o life_n which_o be_v our_o chief_a and_o most_o precious_a jewel_n and_o therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o keep_v it_o holy_a and_o undefiled_a for_o he_o that_o when_o he_o be_v please_v to_o call_v for_o it_o we_o may_v be_v sure_a to_o deliver_v it_o up_o to_o himself_o for_o the_o devil_n will_v be_v ready_a watch_v for_o it_o as_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o body_n and_o none_o can_v keep_v it_o from_o he_o but_o only_a god_n wherefore_o we_o must_v keep_v our_o soul_n so_o pure_a and_o clean_a that_o god_n may_v accept_v they_o and_o take_v they_o into_o his_o charge_n for_o if_o we_o present_v unto_o he_o a_o filthy_a soul_n pollute_v with_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n we_o have_v no_o ground_n to_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v take_v care_n of_o it_o and_o keep_v it_o unto_o the_o general_a resurrection_n wherefore_o we_o shall_v study_v and_o labour_n to_o keep_v our_o soul_n clean_o from_o sin_n by_o wash_v they_o daily_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n if_o they_o be_v stain_v with_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o day_n we_o shall_v thus_o cleanse_v they_o at_o night_n before_o we_o sleep_v and_o if_o they_o be_v defile_v with_o the_o pollution_n of_o the_o night_n ●_o we_o must_v not_o forget_v to_o wash_v they_o with_o the_o tear_n sigh_n and_o groan_n that_o flow_v from_o a_o sorrowful_a and_o contrite_a heart_n in_o the_o morning_n before_o we_o set_v about_o our_o necessary_a occasion_n in_o our_o call_n that_o we_o may_v comfortable_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v bless_v and_o prosper_v our_o handy_a work_n if_o this_o be_v our_o daily_a and_o constant_a practice_n the_o blessing_n of_o god_n will_v go_v along_o with_o we_o in_o all_o our_o action_n sin_n can_v then_o cleave_v to_o our_o soul_n to_o make_v death_n fearful_a to_o we_o death_n can_v then_o come_v sudden_o upon_o we_o neither_o will_v the_o remembrance_n of_o it_o be_v terrible_a but_o we_o shall_v cheerful_o commend_v our_o soul_n to_o god_n because_o we_o may_v confident_o believe_v that_o he_o will_v keep_v they_o in_o his_o heavenly_a mansion_n until_o they_o shall_v be_v again_o unite_v to_o our_o body_n with_o a_o unseparable_a union_n and_o make_v glorious_a body_n fit_a to_o live_v and_o reign_v with_o christ_n for_o ever_o but_o natural_a man_n know_v not_o the_o worth_n of_o their_o soul_n nor_o the_o great_a price_n wherewith_o they_o be_v redeem_v if_o they_o belong_v unto_o christ_n they_o suppose_v that_o the_o soul_n come_v from_o a_o principle_n of_o nature_n as_o the_o body_n do_v whereas_o it_o be_v a_o immortal_a spirit_n which_o proceed_v not_o from_o any_o mortal_a principle_n but_o be_v breathe_v into_o we_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o soon_o as_o the_o body_n be_v frame_v in_o the_o womb_n and_o make_v capable_a to_o receive_v this_o breath_n of_o
life_n though_o the_o soul_n be_v thus_o high_o to_o be_v prize_v and_o far_o excel_v the_o body_n in_o worth_n and_o dignity_n yet_o natural_a man_n will_v pamper_v and_o garnish_v out_o the_o body_n which_o be_v every_o day_n subject_a to_o corruption_n and_o change_n but_o they_o suffer_v their_o soul_n to_o starve_v for_o want_v of_o spiritual_a food_n and_o to_o go_v naked_a for_o want_v of_o spiritual_a clothing_n whereby_o they_o be_v expose_v to_o the_o venomous_a dart_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o to_o the_o scorch_a heat_n of_o their_o sinful_a lust_n their_o soul_n have_v no_o spiritual_a light_n to_o foresee_v danger_n and_o to_o shun_v they_o they_o have_v no_o heavenly_a grace_n to_o resist_v the_o temptation_n and_o allurement_n of_o the_o world_n the_o flesh_n and_o the_o devil_n but_o what_o the_o eye_n or_o the_o ear_n let_v in_o be_v willing_o receive_v thus_o their_o soul_n be_v pollute_v and_o unclean_a and_o death_n do_v snatch_v they_o away_o because_o they_o can_v willing_o deliver_v they_o up_o for_o they_o have_v no_o faith_n to_o believe_v and_o no_o assurance_n to_o persuade_v they_o that_o god_n will_v receive_v their_o soul_n when_o they_o be_v part_v from_o their_o body_n this_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o our_o soul_n by_o nature_n and_o so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v in_o this_o condition_n god_n will_v not_o receive_v they_o and_o then_o they_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o prey_n to_o the_o devil_n 4._o devil_n psal_n 103_o 4._o but_o christ_n have_v redeem_v our_o soul_n from_o destruction_n 20._o destruction_n 1_o cor._n 6._o 20._o he_o have_v buy_v we_o with_o a_o great_a price_n he_o have_v shed_v his_o most_o precious_a blood_n upon_o the_o cross_n to_o take_v away_o the_o guilt_n and_o filth_n of_o our_o sin_n wherefore_o god_n may_v just_o claim_v our_o whole_a man_n both_o soul_n and_o body_n as_o his_o due_n by_o a_o treble_a right_n by_o the_o right_n of_o creation_n of_o donation_n and_o of_o purchase_n 28_o purchase_n act._n 17._o 28_o for_o in_o he_o we_o live_v and_o move_v and_o have_v our_o be_v 7_o be_v 1_o cor._n 4._o 7_o what_o have_v we_o that_o we_o do_v not_o receive_v from_o god_n what_o shall_v we_o bequeath_v unto_o he_o in_o thankfulness_n for_o all_o his_o benefit_n to_o we_o we_o can_v do_v no_o less_o than_o devote_v ourselves_o soul_n and_o body_n to_o he_o and_o to_o his_o service_n while_o we_o live_v here_o and_o when_o this_o life_n shall_v be_v end_v to_o bequeath_v our_o precious_a soul_n unto_o he_o purify_v and_o cleanse_v from_o all_o sin_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n for_o nothing_o can_v be_v too_o pure_a that_o be_v present_v to_o he_o and_o nothing_o can_v be_v too_o dear_a and_o precious_a for_o he_o if_o we_o bequeath_v this_o precious_a legacy_n to_o god_n in_o our_o life-time_n than_o he_o will_v require_v it_o as_o of_o right_o belong_v unto_o he_o and_o he_o will_v receive_v it_o from_o we_o at_o our_o death_n this_o will_v sweeten_v the_o bitterness_n of_o death_n to_o we_o which_o will_v put_v a_o end_n to_o all_o our_o sorrow_n and_o this_o will_v make_v we_o willing_a to_o leave_v this_o world_n and_o desire_v with_o paul_n to_o be_v dissolve_v because_o we_o do_v steadfast_o believe_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v with_o christ_n but_o if_o we_o give_v ourselves_o to_o worldly_a vanity_n to_o lewd_a and_o licentious_a live_n and_o not_o to_o the_o true_a worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v then_o be_v unwilling_a to_o part_v with_o this_o life_n or_o to_o look_v upon_o death_n when_o it_o come_v because_o we_o know_v not_o to_o who_o it_o will_v deliver_v our_o poor_a soul_n for_o we_o can_v comfortable_o commend_v they_o to_o god_n when_o we_o die_v with_o any_o hope_n or_o good_a assurance_n that_o he_o will_v receive_v they_o see_v they_o do_v god_n no_o service_n while_o we_o live_v what_o thankfulness_n be_v it_o then_o to_o commend_v our_o soul_n unto_o god_n when_o we_o can_v keep_v they_o no_o long_o for_o the_o world_n or_o for_o our_o sinful_a delight_n and_o what_o comfort_n can_v we_o have_v at_o our_o death_n if_o we_o have_v no_o faith_n to_o believe_v that_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v all_o happiness_n with_o christ_n but_o rather_o just_a cause_n to_o fear_v that_o the_o sinfulness_n of_o our_o life_n will_v bring_v we_o to_o everlasting_a torment_n after_o death_n it_o may_v sometime_o fall_v out_o that_o we_o shall_v neither_o have_v time_n nor_o ability_n to_o dispose_v of_o our_o soul_n when_o we_o die_v as_o we_o desire_v and_o as_o we_o ought_v for_o if_o death_n come_v sudden_o upon_o we_o by_o any_o casualty_n or_o otherwise_o we_o have_v then_o no_o time_n to_o commit_v our_o soul_n unto_o god_n protection_n or_o if_o we_o be_v take_v away_o by_o some_o violent_a or_o malignant_a disease_n which_o do_v distemper_v our_o sense_n and_o weaken_v our_o understanding_n and_o reason_n that_o we_o be_v unfit_a for_o this_o great_a work_n we_o have_v then_o no_o ability_n to_o resign_v up_o our_o spirit_n unto_o god_n in_o a_o holy_a way_n what_o shall_v we_o do_v then_o where_o be_v our_o comfort_n in_o death_n this_o need_v not_o trouble_v our_o thought_n if_o we_o have_v former_o in_o our_o life_n have_v any_o holy_a assurance_n of_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n of_o our_o justification_n by_o his_o righteousness_n of_o our_o redemption_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n and_o of_o his_o death_n and_o of_o his_o sanctification_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o we_o have_v live_v virtuous_o and_o pious_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o have_v serve_v the_o lord_n our_o god_n with_o a_o perfect_a and_o upright_a heart_n in_o the_o time_n of_o our_o life_n for_o then_o death_n can_v come_v sudden_o upon_o we_o and_o no_o extremity_n of_o sickness_n or_o pain_n can_v separate_v we_o from_o christ_n nor_o take_v away_o our_o comfort_n from_o our_o soul_n at_o our_o death_n because_o god_n will_v receive_v they_o up_o into_o his_o holy_a habitation_n to_o abide_v and_o dwell_v with_o christ_n for_o ever_o though_o we_o have_v neither_o time_n nor_o ability_n to_o commend_v they_o unto_o he_o last_o let_v we_o zealous_o meditate_v for_o our_o great_a comfort_n upon_o the_o blood_n and_o water_n that_o gush_v out_o from_o our_o saviour_n heart_n after_o he_o be_v dead_a when_o his_o side_n be_v pierce_v with_o the_o spear_n there_o be_v blood_n to_o take_v away_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n for_o our_o justification_n and_o there_o be_v water_n to_o wash_v away_o the_o stain_n of_o sin_n for_o our_o sanctification_n for_o as_o our_o sin_n be_v impute_v to_o he_o as_o our_o surety_n so_o by_o faith_n his_o righteousness_n be_v impute_v to_o we_o and_o god_n do_v account_v we_o just_o and_o righteous_a in_o his_o sight_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n so_o likewise_o by_o grace_n we_o be_v renew_v daily_o and_o sanctify_a in_o our_o life_n and_o conversation_n wherefore_o we_o shall_v raise_v up_o our_o thought_n and_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n to_o this_o sanctify_a water_n when_o we_o think_v upon_o our_o baptism_n or_o see_v that_o sacrament_n celebrate_v that_o our_o heart_n may_v be_v sprinkle_v with_o it_o by_o faith_n to_o purify_v our_o soul_n from_o the_o leprosy_n and_o spot_n of_o our_o sin_n also_o we_o must_v set_v the_o cogitation_n of_o our_o heart_n upon_o this_o sacred_a blood_n when_o we_o feed_v at_o the_o lord_n table_n that_o by_o faith_n we_o may_v be_v persuade_v that_o christ_n do_v shed_v his_o blood_n and_o be_v crucify_v for_o we_o consider_v also_o that_o though_o the_o body_n of_o our_o bless_a redeemer_n be_v miserable_o rend_v and_o tear_v by_o the_o cruelty_n of_o his_o enemy_n yet_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o break_v a_o bone_n of_o he_o according_a to_o this_o of_o david_n 20_o david_n psal_n 34._o 20_o he_o keep_v all_o his_o bone_n not_o one_o of_o they_o be_v break_v and_o though_o they_o break_v the_o bone_n of_o the_o two_o malefactor_n that_o be_v crucify_v with_o he_o yet_o they_o break_v not_o a_o bone_n of_o he_o that_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v fulfil_v 12._o fulfil_v num._n 9_o 12._o that_o not_o a_o bone_n of_o he_o shall_v be_v break_v god_n so_o restrain_v his_o bloody_a enemy_n that_o they_o can_v do_v no_o more_o than_o what_o be_v decree_v and_o what_o christ_n be_v willing_a to_o suffer_v for_o he_o do_v not_o yield_v to_o their_o malice_n and_o cruelty_n but_o only_o in_o obedience_n to_o his_o father_n will_n for_o a_o word_n of_o his_o mouth_n have_v be_v sufficient_a to_o confound_v all_o his_o tormentor_n but_o how_o then_o shall_v our_o redemption_n be_v wrought_v how_o shall_v the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v fulfil_v and_o how_o
cor._n 1._o 3._o who_o be_v the_o god_n of_o all_o comfort_n for_o thus_o he_o say_v by_o his_o prophet_n 12._o prophet_n isa_n 51._o 11_o 12._o the_o redeem_v of_o the_o lord_n shall_v return_v and_o come_v with_o sing_v unto_o zion_n and_o everlasting_a joy_n shall_v be_v upon_o their_o head_n they_o shall_v obtain_v gladn●sse_n and_o joy_n and_o mourning_n shall_v flee_v away_o i_o even_o i_o be_o he_o that_o comfort_v you_o what_o comfort_n can_v we_o then_o want_v if_o god_n be_v our_o comforter_n second_o if_o we_o delight_v in_o pleasure_n heaven_n will_v afford_v we_o more_o than_o our_o heart_n can_v desire_v 9_o desire_v psal_n 36._o 8_o 9_o there_o we_o shall_v be_v abundant_o satisfy_v with_o the_o fatness_n of_o god_n house_n and_o he_o will_v make_v we_o drink_v of_o the_o river_n of_o his_o pleasure_n for_o with_o he_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o life_n in_o his_o light_n shall_v we_o see_v light_a also_o the_o psalmist_n say_v thus_o 11_o thus_o psal_n 16._o 11_o god_n will_v show_v we_o the_o path_n of_o life_n in_o his_o presence_n be_v fullness_n of_o joy_n at_o his_o right_a hand_n there_o be_v pleasure_n for_o evermore_o for_o heaven_n be_v the_o place_n of_o all_o peace_n and_o comfort_n of_o all_o joy_n and_o happiness_n and_o of_o all_o glory_n and_o immortality_n three_o heaven_n be_v the_o place_n of_o all_o security_n as_o abraham_n say_v to_o dives_n 26_o dives_n lu._n 16._o 26_o between_o we_o and_o you_o there_o be_v a_o great_a gulf_n fix_v so_o that_o they_o which_o will_v pass_v from_o hence_o to_o you_o can_v neither_o can_v they_o ●asse_v to_o we_o that_o will_v come_v from_o thence_o also_o th●●_n say_v christ_n 10._o christ_n mat._n 25._o 10._o when_o the_o brid●groom_n come_v and_o they_o that_o be_v ready_a be_v go_v in_o with_o he_o to_o the_o marriage_n the_o door_n will_v be_v shut_v and_o the●_n none_o can_v go_v in_o and_o none_o can_v come_v out_o 20_o out_o mat._n 6._o 20_o ●n_a heaven_n we_o may_v safe_o keep_v our_o spiritual_a treasure_n from_o the_o moth_n and_o rust_n and_o from_o that_o arch_a thief_n the_o devil_n if_o this_o precious_a jewel_n which_o be_v our_o ●ou●_n be_v lay_v up_o in_o heaven_n it_o will_v be_v safe_o keep_v there_o for_o nothing_o can_v corrupt_v it_o and_o no_o thief_n can_v steal_v it_o away_o last_o that_o which_o make_v up_o the_o fullness_n of_o our_o joy_n and_o happiness_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v the_o eternity_n of_o it_o for_o if_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v it_o but_o for_o a_o time_n it_o will_v great_o lessen_v the_o comfort_n of_o our_o felicity_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o end_n of_o time_n but_o there_o will_v be_v no_o end_n of_o our_o bless_a condition_n in_o heaven_n for_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n 18._o lord_n isa_n 65._o 17_o 18._o behold_v i_o create_v new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n and_o the_o former_a shall_v not_o be_v remember_v nor_o come_v into_o mind_n but_o be_v you_o glad_a and_o rejoice_v for_o ever_o in_o that_o which_o i_o create_v for_o behold_v i_o create_v jerusalem_n a_o rejoice_n and_o her_o people_n a_o joy_n and_o again_o he_o say_v by_o the_o same_o prophet_n 22_o prophet_n isa_n 66_o 22_o for_o as_o the_o new_a heaven_n and_o the_o new_a earth_n which_o i_o will_v make_v shall_v remain_v b●fore_o i_o so_o shall_v your_o seed_n and_o your_o name_n remain_v thus_o say_v john_n 5._o john_n rev._n 2_o 2._o 5._o the_o servant_n of_o the_o lamb_n shall_v be_v in_o this_o city_n of_o god_n and_o they_o shall_v reign_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o paul_n speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n say_v thus_o 17_o thus_o 1_o thes_n 4._o 17_o then_o we_o which_o be_v alive_a and_o remain_v shall_v be_v catch_v up_o together_o with_o they_o in_o the_o cloud_n to_o meet_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o air_n and_o so_o shall_v we_o ever_o be_v with_o the_o lord_n daniel_n also_o say_v thus_o 18._o thus_o dan._n 7._o 18._o and_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n shall_v take_v the_o kingdom_n and_o possess_v it_o for_o ever_o even_o for_o ever_o and_o ever_o holy_a david_n say_v 18_o say_v psal_n 37._o 18_o that_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o upright_o shall_v be_v for_o ever_o thus_o it_o be_v evident_a how_o great_a our_o gain_n shall_v be_v by_o christ_n after_o death_n and_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o end_n of_o our_o happiness_n consider_v now_o that_o whatsoever_o we_o suffer_v in_o this_o life_n be_v but_o for_o a_o short_a time_n and_o that_o the_o bitterness_n of_o our_o sorrow_n be_v sweeten_v with_o some_o comfort_n also_o that_o our_o joy_n and_o felicity_n in_o heaven_n be_v for_o eternity_n and_o that_o it_o be_v no_o way_n embitter_v with_o any_o trouble_n or_o vexation_n that_o we_o may_v patient_o and_o meek_o bear_v whatsoever_o god_n shall_v lay_v upon_o we_o and_o earnest_o desire_v to_o be_v unclothe_v of_o this_o corruptible_a body_n that_o we_o may_v put_v on_o the_o glorious_a robe_n of_o immortality_n for_o ever_o thus_o say_v paul_n 17_o paul_n ●_o cor._n 4._o 17_o our_o light_a affliction_n which_o be_v but_o for_o a_o moment_n work_v for_o we_o a_o far_o more_o exceed_a and_o eternal_a weight_n of_o glory_n so_o likewise_o if_o we_o consider_v and_o believe_v that_o we_o have_v this_o gain_n and_o advantage_n only_o by_o christ_n it_o will_v make_v we_o study_v and_o labour_n by_o all_o mean_n to_o enjoy_v he_o and_o when_o we_o have_v get_v some_o interest_n in_o he_o to_o stick_v close_o to_o he_o by_o faith_n to_o love_v he_o with_o entire_a affection_n and_o to_o be_v obedient_a to_o his_o will_n and_o command_n wherefore_o now_o if_o thou_o have_v any_o holy_a desire_n to_o be_v free_v from_o all_o temptation_n from_o all_o sin_n and_o from_o all_o sorrow_n vexation_n and_o calamity_n then_o set_v the_o meditation_n of_o thy_o heart_n upon_o the_o fruition_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n where_o thou_o shall_v be_v free_v from_o all_o these_o evil_n though_o here_o upon_o earth_n they_o will_v rush_v in_o upon_o thou_o also_o if_o thou_o desire_v to_o enjoy_v all_o the_o happiness_n that_o heaven_n can_v afford_v thou_o and_o to_o enjoy_v god_n himself_o for_o ever_o then_o look_v up_o unto_o christ_n thy_o saviour_n with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n who_o have_v purchase_v heaven_n for_o thou_o with_o his_o own_o blood_n and_o have_v make_v thou_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o adoption_n that_o he_o may_v bestow_v all_o this_o upon_o thou_o whereof_o he_o have_v give_v thou_o some_o taste_n in_o this_o life_n but_o thou_o can_v not_o be_v make_v perfect_a in_o it_o until_o this_o life_n be_v end_v 10._o end_v 2_o pet._n 1._o 10._o give_v all_o diligence_n therefore_o as_o peter_n say_v to_o make_v thy_o call_n and_o election_n sure_a by_o a_o lively_a faith_n in_o christ_n and_o get_v the_o seal_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n which_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v stamp_v upon_o thy_o heart_n that_o thou_o may_v carry_v it_o to_o thy_o grave_n and_o then_o death_n will_v give_v thy_o soul_n free_a passage_n into_o the_o mansion_n of_o heaven_n where_o this_o perfect_a freedom_n be_v to_o be_v obtain_v and_o where_o this_o gain_n of_o eternal_a blessedness_n be_v to_o be_v get_v wherefore_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n live_v not_o as_o a_o citizen_n of_o this_o world_n but_o live_v here_o as_o a_o free_a denizen_n of_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n have_v thy_o mind_n and_o the_o affection_n of_o thy_o heart_n set_v upon_o the_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n thereof_o that_o thy_o life_n and_o conversation_n may_v be_v pure_a and_o holy_a here_o upon_o earth_n and_o then_o thy_o soul_n shall_v live_v and_o eternal_o possess_v it_o after_o it_o be_v dissolve_v from_o thy_o body_n how_o christ_n be_v our_o spiritual_a life_n man_n in_o his_o first_o creation_n have_v a_o spiritual_a life_n which_o be_v free_a from_o any_o spot_n or_o stain_v of_o sin_n but_o he_o soon_o lose_v it_o by_o his_o transgression_n and_o deface_v this_o lively_a image_n of_o god_n that_o be_v stamp_v upon_o his_o soul_n and_o then_o in_o himself_o he_o have_v no_o ability_n to_o recover_v his_o lose_a happiness_n this_o leprosy_n of_o sin_n have_v infect_v all_o his_o posterity_n that_o proceed_v from_o he_o by_o natural_a propagation_n which_o have_v bring_v upon_o they_o a_o spiritual_a death_n and_o lay_v they_o open_a to_o eternal_a death_n hereafter_o though_o this_o be_v our_o condition_n by_o nature_n yet_o 7._o yet_o eph._n 2._o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7._o god_n who_o be_v rich_a in_o mercy_n for_o his_o great_a love_n where_o with_o he_o love_v we_o even_o when_o we_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n have_v quicken_v we_o together_o in_o
it_o may_v run_v down_o to_o every_o member_n of_o his_o mystical_a body_n which_o be_v typify_v by_o 2._o by_o psal_n 133._o 2._o that_o precious_a ointment_n which_o be_v pour_v upon_o aaron_n head_n and_o run_v down_o to_o the_o skirt_n of_o his_o garment_n so_o that_o we_o have_v a_o spiritual_a light_n to_o discern_v the_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o our_o peace_n then_o christ_n have_v wrought_v this_o life_n in_o we_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n for_o in_o the_o state_n of_o nature_n we_o be_v dead_a to_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v heavenly_a 14_o heavenly_a 1_o cor._n 2._o 14_o and_o we_o can_v not_o receive_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n because_o they_o be_v spiritual_o discern_v second_o if_o our_o soul_n can_v feed_v upon_o heavenly_a food_n and_o if_o we_o can_v express_v all_o other_o action_n of_o a_o spiritual_a life_n as_o to_o walk_v in_o the_o path_n of_o holiness_n to_o speak_v the_o pure_a language_n of_o canaan_n and_o to_o have_v our_o conversation_n in_o heaven_n while_o we_o live_v here_o upon_o earth_n we_o may_v then_o be_v full_o persuade_v that_o there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a life_n in_o we_o for_o so_o long_o as_o sin_n reign_v in_o our_o mortal_a body_n and_o until_o there_o be_v a_o new_a creation_n wrought_v in_o we_o we_o be_v spiritual_o dead_a to_o every_o good_a work_n and_o we_o can_v express_v no_o action_n of_o a_o sanctify_a life_n three_o if_o our_o soul_n be_v cleanse_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o if_o the_o filth_n and_o stain_n of_o our_o sin_n be_v wash_v away_o in_o the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n by_o his_o sanctify_a grace_n and_o cover_v under_o his_o righteousness_n that_o they_o appear_v not_o to_o the_o dishonour_n of_o god_n or_o to_o the_o hurt_n of_o our_o neighbour_n and_o that_o we_o delight_v not_o in_o any_o sin_n but_o do_v study_n and_o endeavour_v to_o serve_v and_o please_v god_n with_o a_o sincere_a heart_n and_o pure_a affection_n it_o be_v a_o sure_a evidence_n that_o christ_n have_v quicken_v and_o raise_v we_o up_o from_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n to_o the_o life_n of_o grace_n last_o if_o our_o duty_n and_o service_n to_o god_n proceed_v from_o a_o clean_a and_o a_o purify_a heart_n which_o be_v sanctify_v and_o perfume_v with_o the_o grace_n and_o merit_n of_o christ_n than_o god_n will_v smell_v the_o perfume_n of_o they_o to_o accept_v of_o our_o person_n and_o of_o our_o holy_a offering_n because_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o thus_o we_o may_v know_v to_o our_o great_a comfort_n if_o we_o narrow_o look_v into_o our_o condition_n what_o spiritual_a life_n we_o have_v and_o that_o we_o have_v it_o only_o from_o christ_n and_o by_o he_o wherefore_o now_o if_o thou_o desire_v to_o live_v spiritual_o by_o christ_n thou_o must_v faithful_o believe_v that_o he_o have_v take_v away_o that_o spiritual_a death_n which_o by_o nature_n be_v upon_o thou_o for_o thy_o sin_n and_o that_o he_o only_o can_v give_v thou_o this_o spiritual_a life_n for_o as_o he_o have_v vanquish_v and_o overcome_v the_o power_n of_o death_n both_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a so_o he_o can_v give_v a_o spiritual_a life_n as_o well_o as_o a_o temporal_a to_o who_o and_o when_o he_o please_v this_o spiritual_a life_n thou_o must_v have_v from_o he_o if_o thou_o can_v make_v a_o particular_a application_n of_o he_o to_o thyself_o by_o faith_n that_o he_o be_v thy_o saviour_n and_o thy_o redeemer_n for_o he_o have_v then_o breathe_v into_o thou_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n which_o have_v wrought_v this_o spiritual_a life_n in_o thou_o though_o at_o the_o first_o thou_o can_v feel_v no_o power_n of_o it_o without_o this_o application_n of_o christ_n to_o thyself_o thou_o can_v draw_v no_o comfort_n from_o he_o and_o he_o will_v profit_v thou_o nothing_o it_o do_v much_o comfort_n job_n in_o his_o great_a misery_n when_o he_o do_v thus_o apply_v christ_n to_o himself_o 27._o himself_o job_n 19_o 25_o 27._o i_o know_v say_v he_o that_o my_o redeemer_n live_v who_o i_o shall_v see_v for_o myself_o if_o thou_o can_v bring_v thy_o heart_n to_o close_v thus_o with_o christ_n he_o will_v give_v light_n to_o thy_o eye_n food_n to_o thy_o soul_n balm_n for_o thy_o disease_n and_o comfortable_a refresh_n for_o thy_o languish_a spirit_n but_o if_o thou_o be_v still_o dead_a in_o thy_o sin_n and_o have_v no_o spiritual_a life_n in_o christ_n thou_o can_v then_o feel_v no_o comfort_n by_o he_o for_o what_o good_a can_v light_o do_v to_o a_o dead_a man_n what_o benefit_n can_v he_o have_v by_o the_o dainty_a food_n what_o can_v the_o best_a medicine_n profit_v he_o and_o what_o sense_n have_v he_o of_o the_o best_a perfume_n but_o if_o thou_o do_v live_v in_o christ_n and_o he_o in_o thou_o thou_o shall_v partake_v with_o he_o in_o his_o fullness_n of_o all_o spiritual_a grace_n 19_o grace_n col._n 1._o 19_o for_o it_o please_v the_o father_n that_o in_o he_o shall_v all_o fullness_n dwell_v 16_o dwell_v john_n 1._o 16_o and_o of_o his_o fullness_n have_v all_o we_o receive_v and_o grace_n for_o grace_n now_o consider_v further_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o meritorious_a cause_n of_o this_o spiritual_a life_n 14_o life_n tit._n 2._o 14_o for_o he_o give_v himself_o free_o and_o voluntary_o to_o be_v a_o oblation_n and_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o we_o to_o redeem_v we_o from_o all_o iniquity_n and_o from_o whatsoever_o we_o be_v liable_a unto_o by_o reason_n of_o sin_n to_o wit_n from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n from_o the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n from_o the_o bondage_n of_o satan_n from_o the_o terror_n of_o death_n and_o from_o eternal_a condemnation_n also_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o resurrection_n he_o have_v subdue_v and_o overcome_v death_n hell_n and_o the_o grave_n that_o we_o may_v be_v raise_v out_o of_o the_o grave_n of_o sin_n to_o live_v a_o spiritual_a life_n to_o god_n in_o christ_n christ_n have_v wrought_v our_o redemption_n by_o his_o active_a and_o passive_a obedience_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n whereby_o we_o be_v justify_v in_o his_o sight_n for_o he_o have_v take_v our_o life_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n justice_n where_o we_o have_v no_o hope_n to_o enjoy_v it_o and_o have_v put_v it_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o mercy_n where_o we_o be_v sure_a through_o christ_n to_o have_v the_o comfort_n of_o it_o here_o and_o the_o happiness_n of_o it_o hereafter_o though_o we_o must_v pass_v by_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n before_o we_o can_v enjoy_v the_o sweet_a consolation_n of_o this_o spiritual_a life_n and_o though_o we_o must_v bring_v ourselves_o so_o low_o in_o our_o humiliation_n and_o in_o mortify_v of_o our_o sin_n and_o corruption_n as_o if_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o be_v thrust_v down_o into_o hell_n yet_o god_n will_v then_o give_v we_o a_o spiritual_a life_n in_o christ_n to_o support_v we_o he_o will_v then_o raise_v we_o up_o to_o newness_n of_o life_n by_o the_o sanctify_a grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n that_o our_o spiritual_a life_n may_v appear_v and_o that_o we_o may_v be_v make_v fit_a to_o enjoy_v christ_n for_o ever_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n this_o be_v the_o first_o main_a end_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v be_v redeem_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n second_o christ_n be_v the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o our_o spiritual_a life_n for_o as_o we_o have_v our_o justification_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n so_o we_o have_v our_o sanctification_n by_o the_o same_o blood_n and_o these_o two_o can_v be_v separate_v but_o must_v go_v together_o for_o we_o have_v no_o sure_a evidence_n that_o we_o be_v justify_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n but_o by_o the_o sanctification_n of_o our_o life_n the_o act_n of_o our_o justification_n be_v wrought_v at_o once_o as_o soon_o as_o we_o be_v ingraft_v into_o christ_n by_o faith_n but_o our_o sanctification_n must_v be_v a_o continue_a act_n so_o long_o as_o we_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n for_o the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n have_v so_o many_o spot_n and_o stain_n of_o sin_n in_o they_o that_o they_o have_v daily_o need_v to_o pray_v to_o be_v every_o day_n purify_v and_o cleanse_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o be_v daily_o renew_v with_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n this_o be_v the_o second_o main_a end_n why_o christ_n give_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o oblation_n for_o we_o that_o he_o may_v purify_v we_o to_o be_v a_o peculiar_a people_n to_o himself_o according_a to_o this_o of_o paul_n 14_o paul_n tit._n 2._o 14_o christ_n give_v himself_o for_o we_o that_o he_o may_v redeem_v we_o from_o all_o iniquity_n and_o purify_v unto_o himself_o
sickness_n under_o the_o cross_n or_o under_o the_o buffet_n of_o satan_n this_o will_n much_o increase_v our_o faith_n and_o confirm_v our_o hope_n and_o confidence_n in_o god_n 37._o god_n 1_o sam._n 17._o 37._o this_o consideration_n make_v david_n bold_a to_o encounter_v with_o goliath_n that_o great_a giant_n because_o god_n have_v former_o deliver_v he_o from_o the_o paw_n of_o the_o lion_n and_o from_o the_o paw_n of_o the_o bear_n and_o therefore_o he_o will_v now_o deliver_v he_o from_o that_o uncircumcised_a philistine_n we_o shall_v make_v the_o same_o use_n of_o the_o former_a experience_n that_o we_o have_v any_o way_n have_v of_o the_o goodness_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n to_o we_o to_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n and_o affiance_n in_o god_n when_o we_o be_v in_o any_o distress_n and_o can_v see_v no_o mean_n to_o give_v we_o any_o hope_n of_o safety_n or_o of_o deliverance_n six_o if_o we_o be_v of_o low_a esteem_n in_o our_o own_o eye_n and_o poor_a in_o spirit_n to_o walk_v humble_o before_o god_n in_o a_o true_a sight_n and_o sense_n of_o our_o unworthiness_n and_o of_o our_o emptiness_n of_o grace_n and_o goodness_n then_o god_n will_v give_v we_o more_o grace_n more_o holy_a zeal_n and_o he_o will_v make_v we_o rich_a in_o faith_n 5._o faith_n 1_o pet._n 5._o 5._o for_o god_n resist_v the_o proud_a and_o give_v grace_n to_o the_o humble_a thus_o we_o may_v have_v more_o strength_n of_o faith_n from_o god_n because_o he_o will_v deal_v like_o a_o tender_a father_n with_o these_o that_o know_v their_o own_o weakness_n to_o supply_v their_o want_n with_o a_o gracious_a increase_n of_o their_o faith_n 3._o faith_n isa_n 42._o 3._o for_o he_o will_v not_o break_v the_o bruise_a reed_n nor_o quench_v the_o smoke_a flax_n neither_o will_v he_o require_v of_o the_o weak_a so_o much_o as_o of_o these_o that_o be_v strong_a in_o faith_n and_o whatsoever_o he_o require_v of_o they_o he_o will_v give_v such_o ability_n of_o grace_n as_o shall_v make_v they_o able_a to_o perform_v it_o last_o if_o we_o desire_v to_o have_v our_o faith_n increase_v we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o we_o give_v no_o liberty_n to_o sin_n for_o that_o will_v weaken_v our_o faith_n it_o will_v stop_v the_o influence_n of_o grace_n to_o our_o heart_n and_o hinder_v the_o free_a operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o we_o how_o can_v we_o confide_v and_o trust_v in_o god_n mercy_n and_o goodness_n when_o we_o have_v deserve_v his_o wrath_n and_o displeasure_n for_o some_o sin_n that_o do_v over_o power_n we_o without_o repentance_n how_o can_v grace_n be_v strong_a in_o we_o if_o sin_n do_v still_o reign_v in_o our_o mortal_a body_n there_o can_v be_v no_o increase_n of_o faith_n if_o sin_n be_v strong_a in_o we_o if_o god_n be_v please_v to_o try_v our_o faith_n or_o any_o other_o grace_n that_o be_v in_o we_o as_o he_o do_v abraha●s_n faith_n joseph_n chastity_n and_o job_n patience_n we_o shall_v be_v find_v very_o weak_a if_o our_o conscience_n can_v accuse_v we_o of_o any_o sin_n that_o be_v not_o mortify_v and_o subdue_v in_o we_o wherefore_o now_o if_o thou_o be_v conscious_a of_o the_o weakness_n of_o thy_o faith_n by_o thy_o inability_n to_o resist_v any_o temptation_n or_o provocation_n unto_o sin_n by_o thy_o waver_a and_o doubt_v in_o the_o true_a performance_n of_o god_n promise_n if_o they_o be_v above_o thy_o capacity_n and_o by_o thy_o perplex_a fear_n when_o trouble_n or_o danger_n be_v ready_a to_o seize_v upon_o thou_o thou_o must_v not_o look_v upon_o thy_o own_o deserve_n except_o i●_n be_v for_o thy_o humiliation_n for_o thou_o must_v know_v that_o god_n do_v not_o make_v his_o gracious_a promise_n for_o thy_o sake_n though_o they_o be_v make_v for_o thy_o good_a but_o god_n make_v they_o to_o thou_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n in_o who_o be_v the_o perfection_n of_o all_o merit_n 20_o merit_n 2_o cor_n 1._o 20_o and_o in_o who_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v yea_o and_o amen_n so_o that_o if_o thou_o be_v in_o christ_n thou_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o question_v the_o performance_n of_o any_o of_o god_n promise_n also_o for_o the_o increase_n of_o thy_o faith_n meditate_v pious_o upon_o those_o former_a direction_n and_o then_o have_v recourse_n by_o prayer_n to_o thy_o bless_a saviour_n and_o he_o will_v uphold_v thy_o faith_n against_o all_o adversary_n power_n that_o shall_v oppose_v it_o but_o if_o thou_o be_v not_o in_o christ_n no_o promise_n of_o grace_n belong_v unto_o thou_o and_o thou_o can_v find_v no_o comfort_n therein_o how_o to_o esteem_v of_o faith_n though_o it_o be_v sufficient_a high_o to_o prize_n and_o esteem_v of_o true_a justify_v faith_n if_o we_o do_v due_o weigh_v and_o consider_v those_o excellent_a benefit_n and_o comfort_n of_o faith_n former_o set_v down_o to_o make_v we_o happy_a here_o in_o this_o life_n and_o eternal_o bless_v in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v yet_o the_o great_a worth_n and_o esteem_n of_o it_o will_v further_o appear_v by_o these_o follow_a consideration_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v set_v down_o in_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n first_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v set_v several_a high_a commendation_n on_o it_o as_o a_o thing_n of_o great_a price_n 20_o price_n 2_o pet._n 1._o 20_o for_o by_z peter_z he_o call_v it_o precious_a faith_n because_o it_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o righteousness_n of_o our_o god_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n and_o because_o we_o do_v enjoy_v christ_n himself_o by_o it_o we_o must_v needs_o therefore_o esteem_v it_o as_o a_o most_o precious_a jewel_n because_o god_n will_v bestow_v it_o upon_o none_o but_o such_o as_o be_v his_o dear_a child_n and_o elect_v unto_o salvation_n holy_a david_n be_v a_o great_a king_n renown_v for_o his_o honour_n riches_n and_o valour_n he_o be_v victorious_a in_o all_o his_o battle_n and_o he_o prosper_v in_o all_o his_o enterprise_n yet_o his_o faith_n and_o hope_n be_v in_o none_o of_o these_o 1._o these_o psal_n 7._o 1._o but_o his_o trust_n be_v in_o the_o lord_n he_o do_v slight_v all_o his_o earthly_a greatness_n and_o do_v count_v himself_o happy_a only_o by_o his_o faith_n in_o god_n for_o thus_o he_o say_v 4_o say_v psal_n 40._o 4_o blessed_a be_v that_o man_n that_o make_v the_o lord_n his_o trust_n but_o some_o have_v no_o regard_n to_o fix_v their_o faith_n on_o god_n for_o they_o put_v their_o confidence_n in_o the_o arm_n of_o flesh_n in_o the_o multitude_n of_o their_o host_n and_o in_o the_o strength_n of_o their_o chariot_n and_o horseman_n these_o have_v no_o ground_n for_o their_o faith_n to_o rest_v upon_o but_o what_o this_o world_n can_v afford_v they_o which_o they_o will_v find_v to_o be_v vain_a and_o like_o a_o break_a reed_n no_o way_n able_a to_o save_v they_o hadadezer_n trust_v in_o his_o chariot_n and_o horseman_n 4_o horseman_n 2_o sam._n 8._o 4_o but_o david_n smite_v he_o with_o a_o very_a great_a slaughter_n and_o take_v from_o he_o a_o thousand_o chariot_n because_o he_o trust_v in_o the_o lord_n 9_o lord_n 2_o chro._n 14._o 9_o zerah_n the_o ethiopian_a put_v his_o trust_n in_o his_o numerous_a army_n which_o be_v a_o thousand_o thousand_o but_o the_o lord_n overthrow_v they_o before_o king_n asa_n the_o faith_n that_o worldly_a man_n have_v in_o their_o riches_n and_o in_o their_o greatness_n be_v not_o this_o faith_n which_o be_v so_o precious_a and_o so_o much_o to_o be_v esteem_v for_o their_o faith_n be_v ground_v upon_o worldly_a strength_n and_o it_o reach_v no_o further_a than_o humane_a reason_n can_v carry_v it_o no_o marvel_n then_o if_o it_o do_v deceive_v they_o in_o the_o end_n but_o the_o faith_n of_o a_o true_a christian_a be_v fix_v upon_o christ_n and_o upon_o no_o other_o object_n who_o be_v a_o sure_a rock_n to_o rest_v upon_o and_o it_o reach_v up_o to_o heaven_n even_o to_o god_n himself_o and_o it_o will_v fetch_v down_o help_v and_o succour_n comfort_n and_o consolation_n from_o he_o upon_o all_o occasion_n when_o we_o need_v it_o judas_n call_v it_o 2d_o it_o judas_n 2d_o most_o holy_a faith_n because_o it_o make_v we_o holy_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n by_o put_v upon_o we_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n and_o because_o by_o it_o as_o it_o have_v relation_n unto_o christ_n our_o prayer_n and_o all_o other_o our_o service_n to_o god_n be_v holy_a and_o acceptable_a to_o he_o wherefore_o see_v faith_n be_v so_o precious_a that_o god_n will_v bestow_v it_o upon_o none_o but_o upon_o his_o own_o child_n and_o so_o holy_a that_o it_o make_v all_o our_o service_n to_o god_n to_o be_v holy_a we_o ought_v to_o esteem_v it_o as_o a_o pearl_n of_o great_a price_n and_o to_o keep_v it_o as_o a_o most_o precious_a jewel_n second_o we_o
shall_v high_o prize_v our_o faith_n because_o it_o be_v the_o principal_a grace_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n work_v in_o our_o heart_n and_o it_o make_v all_o other_o grace_n profitable_a and_o effectual_a to_o we_o according_a to_o their_o several_a nature_n our_o repentance_n be_v not_o sound_a and_o true_a if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o fruit_n of_o faith_n for_o we_o can_v true_o humble_v ourselves_o before_o god_n and_o free_o confess_v our_o sin_n unto_o he_o with_o a_o contrite_a heart_n if_o we_o do_v not_o look_v upon_o he_o as_o our_o merciful_a father_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v have_v good_a hope_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n neither_o can_v we_o show_v any_o fruit_n of_o repentance_n by_o mortify_v the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n but_o by_o the_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o christ_n death_n which_o we_o must_v draw_v to_o ourselves_o by_o faith_n and_o also_o by_o our_o regeneration_n to_o newness_n of_o life_n but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o resurrection_n which_o we_o must_v also_o have_v by_o faith_n our_o repentance_n can_v give_v we_o no_o holy_a assurance_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n if_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o christ_n have_v full_o satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o they_o all_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o death_n 19_o death_n lu._n 21._o 19_o we_o can_v possess_v our_o soul_n in_o patience_n when_o we_o suffer_v affliction_n and_o tribulation_n and_o when_o we_o be_v under_o the_o cross_n if_o we_o do_v not_o belive_o that_o christ_n have_v sanctify_v our_o suffering_n to_o make_v they_o work_v for_o our_o good_a and_o that_o 22_o that_o act._n 14._o 22_o through_o much_o tribulation_n we_o must_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n we_o can_v love_v god_n with_o true_a filial_a love_n nor_o obey_v he_o with_o filial_a reverence_n and_o fear_n if_o we_o be_v not_o persuade_v of_o our_o adoption_n in_o christ_n by_o faith_n 42_o faith_n mat._n 10._o 42_o our_o work_n of_o charity_n will_v not_o be_v accept_v unless_o they_o be_v do_v in_o faith_n as_o to_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v not_o lose_v our_o reward_n thus_o do_v faith_n put_v life_n and_o vigour_n into_o all_o other_o grace_n to_o make_v they_o effectual_a and_o powerful_a for_o our_o sanctification_n and_o for_o the_o spiritual_a comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n which_o be_v a_o special_a consideration_n to_o make_v we_o account_v of_o our_o faith_n as_o a_o principal_a grace_n without_o which_o we_o can_v have_v no_o hope_n of_o salvation_n three_o 46_o three_o mat._n 13._o 46_o faith_n be_v that_o pearl_n of_o great_a price_n which_o the_o merchant_n man_n in_o the_o gospel_n find_v and_o sell_v all_o that_o he_o have_v to_o buy_v it_o for_o no_o humane_a learning_n no_o ability_n of_o nature_n no_o wealth_n or_o riches_n can_v purchase_v we_o must_v renounce_v our_o trust_n in_o all_o these_o before_o we_o can_v buy_v this_o rich_a pearl_n for_o it_o be_v above_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n to_o attain_v unto_o it_o and_o no_o power_n of_o man_n or_o angel_n can_v procure_v it_o but_o we_o must_v have_v it_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o keep_v it_o in_o his_o own_o power_n and_o we_o may_v have_v it_o of_o he_o without_o money_n and_o without_o price_n if_o in_o the_o true_a humiliation_n of_o our_o spirit_n we_o beg_v it_o of_o he_o but_o if_o we_o seek_v to_o buy_v this_o pearl_n of_o the_o world_n we_o shall_v pay_v dear_a for_o it_o and_o yet_o not_o have_v the_o right_a pearl_n the_o lustre_n of_o these_o pearl_n can_v reach_v no_o further_o than_o to_o the_o object_n of_o the_o eye_n but_o the_o lustre_n of_o this_o true_a oriental_a pearl_n will_v shine_v in_o all_o dark_a place_n of_o woe_n and_o misery_n and_o it_o will_v pierce_v the_o very_a heaven_n to_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n himself_o notwithstanding_o we_o do_v so_o high_o value_v the_o pearl_n that_o nature_n or_o this_o world_n do_v afford_v we_o that_o we_o will_v take_v any_o pain_n or_o be_v at_o any_o cost_n to_o gain_v some_o of_o they_o though_o they_o be_v of_o no_o worth_a to_o rest_v upon_o when_o we_o be_v in_o any_o spiritual_a misery_n whatsoever_o but_o as_o for_o this_o precious_a pearl_n we_o be_v loath_a to_o part_v with_o any_o thing_n for_o it_o that_o by_o nature_n be_v near_o or_o dear_a to_o we_o or_o wherein_o we_o take_v pleasure_n and_o delight_n thus_o we_o delude_v ourselves_o with_o vain_a hope_n and_o we_o rest_v upon_o that_o which_o can_v help_v because_o we_o know_v not_o the_o worth_n of_o true_a faith_n to_o make_v it_o the_o instrument_n of_o our_o trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o god_n through_o christ_n let_v this_o consideration_n also_o advance_v the_o estimation_n of_o faith_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n because_o by_o it_o we_o gain_v christ_n with_o all_o his_o excellency_n and_o in_o christ_n we_o gain_v the_o enjoyment_n of_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o the_o assurance_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n wherefore_o if_o this_o be_v the_o transcendent_a worth_n of_o true_a faith_n we_o shall_v then_o with_o all_o care_n and_o diligence_n seek_v out_o where_o it_o be_v to_o be_v have_v and_o labour_n by_o all_o mean_n to_o obtain_v it_o if_o god_n see_v this_o holy_a desire_n in_o we_o he_o will_v then_o give_v we_o to_o understand_v by_o his_o spirit_n that_o this_o rich_a pearl_n be_v not_o where_o to_o be_v find_v but_o in_o his_o own_o cabinet_n also_o he_o will_v prepare_v our_o heart_n and_o our_o will_n for_o it_o he_o will_v anoint_v our_o eye_n with_o spiritual_a eyesalve_n to_o find_v it_o and_o he_o will_v direct_v we_o to_o the_o mean_n how_o we_o may_v obtain_v it_o first_o therefore_o we_o must_v know_v 8._o know_v eph_n 2._o 8._o 8._o that_o faith_n be_v only_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n which_o he_o bestow_v upon_o who_o be_v please_v 19_o please_v eph._n 1._o 19_o and_o he_o work_v it_o in_o we_o by_o his_o mighty_a power_n second_o god_n will_v give_v we_o heart_n to_o seek_v it_o of_o he_o by_o fervent_a prayer_n which_o be_v a_o powerful_a mean_n to_o obtain_v any_o thing_n of_o god_n three_o his_o spirit_n will_v go_v along_o with_o the_o preach_v of_o his_o word_n that_o if_o we_o hear_v it_o with_o sincere_a affection_n it_o may_v work_v faith_n in_o we_o 17._o we_o rom._n 10._o 17._o for_o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n last_o when_o we_o have_v find_v this_o precious_a pearl_n in_o his_o word_n god_n will_v make_v we_o willing_a to_o buy_v it_o though_o we_o give_v for_o it_o our_o soul_n and_o all_o the_o faculty_n thereof_o our_o heart_n our_o affection_n and_o all_o the_o part_n of_o our_o body_n all_o which_o must_v be_v give_v up_o to_o the_o lord_n or_o else_o we_o can_v enjoy_v true_a faith_n and_o yet_o this_o be_v not_o all_o for_o we_o must_v empty_v ourselves_o of_o all_o conceit_n of_o our_o own_o worth_n and_o quite_o renounce_v all_o confidence_n in_o worldly_a thing_n all_o sinful_a pleasure_n and_o every_o sin_n that_o press_v we_o down_o or_o that_o cleave_v close_o to_o we_o or_o else_o we_o can_v obtain_v this_o precious_a pearl_n of_o god_n four_o we_o may_v conceive_v that_o faith_n be_v of_o great_a estimation_n because_o it_o be_v so_o rare_o find_v upon_o earth_n thus_o say_v our_o saviour_n christ_n concern_v faith_n 8._o faith_n lu._n 18._o 8._o when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v shall_v he_o find_v faith_n on_o the_o earth_n it_o be_v such_o a_o rare_a jewel_n as_o be_v scarce_o to_o be_v find_v few_o do_v enjoy_v it_o and_o none_o can_v right_o esteem_v of_o it_o but_o only_o such_o as_o have_v it_o 17._o it_o rev._n 2._o 17._o christ_n promise_v to_o give_v a_o white_a stone_n to_o he_o that_o overcome_v and_o in_o this_o stone_n a_o new_a name_n be_v write_v which_o no_o man_n know_v save_v he_o that_o receive_v it_o we_o can_v obtain_v this_o white_a stone_n of_o purity_n righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n but_o by_o faith_n whereby_o we_o be_v clothe_v with_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v this_o white_a stone_n also_o we_o shall_v know_v this_o new_a name_n that_o be_v write_v in_o it_o for_o by_o faith_n we_o shall_v put_v on_o christ_n and_o shall_v be_v make_v new_a creature_n to_o live_v as_o become_v new_a christian_n in_o newness_n of_o life_n and_o in_o uprightness_n of_o conversation_n it_o be_v true_a which_o paul_n say_v 2._o say_v 2_o thes_n 3._o 2._o that_o all_o man_n have_v not_o faith_n for_o there_o be_v so_o much_o wickedness_n fraud_n deceit_n and_o unbelief_n among_o man_n that_o true_a faith_n can_v hardly_o be_v find_v be_v it_o be_v
can_v they_o hate_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v wicked_a and_o sinful_a because_o it_o be_v so_o agreeable_a to_o their_o nature_n and_o they_o have_v no_o grace_n to_o check_v their_o corrupt_a nature_n for_o love_v that_o which_o god_n hate_v and_o have_v forbid_v whereas_o a_o regenerate_a man_n will_v find_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v in_o he_o will_v give_v he_o a_o secret_a check_n if_o his_o unregenerate_a part_n do_v take_v pleasure_n and_o delight_n in_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v sinful_a for_o he_o must_v not_o conform_v himself_o to_o the_o fashion_n of_o the_o world_n the_o sense_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v lose_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n we_o enjoy_v the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n and_o his_o assist_a grace_n which_o be_v our_o great_a comfort_n in_o all_o misery_n and_o distress_n and_o so_o long_o as_o we_o do_v enjoy_v that_o we_o be_v sensible_a of_o our_o faith_n and_o we_o feel_v the_o comfort_n of_o it_o but_o when_o god_n do_v hide_v his_o face_n from_o we_o and_o withdraw_v his_o assist_a grace_n it_o be_v the_o great_a trouble_n that_o can_v betide_v we_o it_o take_v away_o the_o comfort_n of_o faith_n from_o our_o soul_n and_o leave_v we_o in_o a_o sad_a and_o sorrowful_a condition_n in_o our_o apprehension_n because_o the_o support_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v cloud_v from_o we_o god_n do_v sometime_o withdraw_v himself_o from_o his_o dear_a servant_n and_o do_v suffer_v they_o to_o loose_v the_o sense_n of_o their_o faith_n for_o a_o time_n to_o make_v they_o prize_v it_o the_o more_o and_o to_o be_v the_o more_o careful_a of_o it_o this_o god_n will_v also_o do_v by_o lay_v his_o rod_n of_o correction_n heavy_a upon_o we_o if_o he_o see_v that_o we_o watch_v not_o careful_o over_o our_o faith_n that_o we_o be_v careless_a in_o the_o use_n and_o exercise_v of_o it_o that_o we_o sleep_v in_o security_n or_o lie_v dead_a in_o our_o sin_n without_o repentance_n or_o if_o we_o abuse_v his_o love_n and_o goodness_n to_o we_o for_o than_o he_o will_v leave_v we_o to_o ourselves_o to_o let_v we_o see_v our_o own_o weakness_n without_o his_o assist_a grace_n upon_o these_o and_o the_o like_a occasion_n the_o devil_n will_v be_v ready_a to_o take_v his_o advantage_n to_o assault_v we_o with_o his_o temptation_n to_o make_v we_o doubt_v of_o the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n when_o affliction_n press_v sore_o upon_o we_o also_o to_o aggravate_v our_o sin_n or_o else_o to_o hide_v they_o out_o of_o our_o sight_n as_o he_o do_v david_n sin_n of_o adultery_n if_o by_o any_o mean_n he_o can_v to_o keep_v we_o in_o unbelief_n or_o without_o repentance_n that_o we_o may_v not_o recover_v the_o sense_n and_o comfort_n of_o our_o faith_n for_o his_o main_a drift_n be_v at_o last_o to_o drive_v we_o into_o despair_n it_o be_v a_o cunning_a policy_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o full_a of_o danger_n if_o he_o can_v keep_v we_o from_o the_o sight_n and_o sense_n of_o our_o sin_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o confess_v they_o and_o lay_v they_o open_v before_o god_n with_o a_o true_o humble_v &_o penitent_a heart_n that_o so_o by_o ou●_n repentance_n we_o may_v have_v a_o holy_a assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o they_o for_o then_o will_v our_o faith_n break_v forth_o as_o th●_n sun_n out_o of_o a_o cloud_n to_o warm_v and_o refresh_v our_o soul_n with_o spiritual_a consolation_n for_o we_o can_v lose_v the_o habit_n of_o faith_n though_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o may_v be_v take_v from_o we_o for_o a_o time_n sometime_o god_n himself_o will_v sift_v and_o winnow_v we_o as_o wheat_n to_o cleanse_v we_o from_o our_o chaff_n to_o keep_v we_o from_o spiritual_a pride_n and_o to_o humble_v we_o for_o our_o sin_n thus_o he_o sift_v the_o house_n of_o israel_n as_o he_o say_v by_o his_o prophet_n 9_o prophet_n am●s_fw-la 9_o 9_o for_o lo_o i_o will_v command_v and_o i_o will_v sift_v the_o house_n of_o israel_n among_o the_o nation_n like_v as_o corn_n be_v sift_v in_o a_o five_o yet_o shall_v not_o the_o least_o grain_n fall_v upon_o the_o earth_n though_o god_n do_v sometime_o deal_v thus_o rigorous_o with_o we_o and_o do_v leave_v we_o no_o hope_n to_o support_v our_o faith_n yet_o not_o the_o least_o grain_n of_o his_o corn_n shall_v fall_v upon_o the_o earth_n but_o our_o faith_n shall_v recover_v her_o strength_n again_o it_o be_v only_a sin_n that_o make_v a_o separation_n between_o god_n and_o we_o according_a to_o this_o of_o the_o prophet_n 2._o prophet_n isai_n 59_o 2._o but_o your_o iniquity_n have_v separate_v between_o you_o and_o your_o god_n and_o your_o sin_n have_v hide_v his_o face_n from_o you_o that_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v 5._o hear_v cant._n 5._o it_o be_v sin_n that_o cause_v christ_n withdraw_v himself_o from_o his_o spouse_n because_o she_o will_v not_o open_v to_o he_o when_o he_o knock_v but_o when_o he_o be_v go_v and_o pass_v she_o be_v in_o a_o woeful_a and_o comfortless_a condition_n nothing_o can_v so_o much_o afflict_v we_o as_o the_o loss_n of_o our_o heavenly_a father_n love_n and_o nothing_o can_v shake_v our_o faith_n so_o much_o as_o when_o our_o soul_n be_v perplex_v because_o in_o our_o own_o apprehension_n god_n be_v either_o become_v our_o enemy_n or_o else_o he_o have_v quite_o forsake_v we_o how_o do_v job_n complain_v in_o his_o great_a affliction_n 28._o affliction_n job_n 30._o 27_o 28._o my_o bowel_n boil_v and_o rest_v not_o i_o go_v mourn_v without_o the_o sun_n my_o skin_n be_v black_a upon_o i_o and_o my_o bone_n be_v burn_v with_o heat_n my_o harp_n also_o be_v turn_v to_o mourning_n and_o my_o organ_n into_o the_o voice_n of_o they_o that_o weep_v holy_a david_n faith_n be_v bring_v to_o so_o low_a a_o degree_n by_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o burden_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o by_o the_o apprehension_n of_o the_o displeasure_n of_o god_n for_o it_o that_o he_o cry_v to_o the_o lord_n say_v 23._o say_v psal_n 38._o 4_o 6_o 21_o 23._o forsake_v i_o not_o o_o lord_n o_o my_o god_n be_v not_o far_o from_o i_o make_v haste_n to_o help_v i_o o_o lord_n my_o salvation_n and_o again_o he_o thus_o cry_v unto_o god_n in_o the_o bitterness_n of_o his_o soul_n 143._o soul_n psal_n 143._o hear_v i_o speedy_o o_o lord_n my_o spirit_n fail_v hide_v not_o thy_o face_n from_o i_o lest_o i_o be_v like_a unto_o they_o that_o go_v down_o into_o the_o pit_n 2._o pit_n psal_n 13._o ●_o 2._o how_o long_o will_v thou_o forget_v i_o o_o lord_n for_o ever_o how_o long_o will_v thou_o hide_v thy_o face_n from_o i_o how_o long_o shall_v i_o take_v counsel_n in_o my_o soul_n have_v sorrow_n in_o my_o heart_n daily_o how_o long_o shall_v my_o enemy_n be_v exalt_v over_o i_o sure_o david_n have_v at_o this_o time_n little_a or_o no●_n sense_n of_o faith_n to_o trust_v and_o depend_v upon_o god_n these_o and_o the_o like_a be_v the_o doleful_a complaint_n of_o god_n child_n when_o they_o be_v overwhelm_v with_o sorrow_n or_o feel_v any_o spiritual_a desertion_n in_o so_o much_o as_o they_o can_v receive_v comfort_n until_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v the_o true_a comforter_n do_v give_v they_o some_o assurance_n of_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n wherefore_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o our_o faith_n may_v be_v so_o strong_o assault_v with_o sorrow_n and_o grief_n of_o heart_n that_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o hold_v out_o but_o be_v ready_a to_o sink_v under_o the_o pressure_n of_o our_o misery_n because_o it_o will_v take_v away_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o must_v uphold_v we_o but_o special_o when_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n lie_v upon_o the_o conscience_n for_o that_o will_v bring_v we_o to_o such_o a_o apprehension_n of_o a_o spiritual_a desertion_n that_o we_o can_v feel_v no_o comfort_n in_o god_n for_o the_o time_n for_o it_o will_v stop_v the_o current_n of_o all_o true_a consolation_n to_o our_o afflict_a spirit_n which_o we_o can_v have_v but_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o nothing_o will_v take_v impression_n in_o we_o to_o comfort_v we_o so_o long_o as_o we_o be_v under_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n but_o these_o or_o the_o like_a uncomfortable_a complaint_n will_v be_v ready_a to_o be_v utter_v that_o god_n have_v quite_o forsake_v we_o that_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n for_o we_o in_o christ_n and_o we_o can_v believe_v that_o there_o be_v any_o salvation_n for_o we_o because_o our_o sin_n be_v so_o many_o and_o so_o grievous_a if_o we_o be_v thus_o afflict_v and_o perplex_v in_o mind_n that_o fear_n and_o doubt_n of_o salvation_n trouble_v we_o because_o our_o faith_n be_v so_o weak_a that_o we_o can_v discern_v it_o this_o will_v give_v we_o great_a satisfaction_n and_o
other_o so_o likewise_o there_o be_v two_o thief_n crucify_v with_o 34._o e_o luk._n 1●_n 34._o christ_n and_o he_o have_v compassion_n on_o the_o one_o but_o he_o reject_v the_o other_o for_o he_o bestow_v his_o grace_n upon_o who_o he_o will_v and_o when_o he_o please_v there_o be_v no_o person_n so_o vile_a no_o condition_n so_o base_a and_o no_o time_n so_o late_o as_o to_o hinder_v christ_n from_o show_v mercy_n to_o a_o poor_a sinner_n that_o be_v true_o sensible_a of_o his_o misery_n and_o feel_v the_o burden_n of_o his_o sin●_n and_o do_v humble_o acknowledge_v his_o miserable_a condition_n and_o his_o unworthiness_n to_o he_o and_o do_v earnest_o sue_v for_o his_o grace_n and_o favour_n with_o a_o break_a and_o a_o contrite_a heart_n as_o this_o malefactor_n do_v also_o christ_n will_v not_o refuse_v those_o that_o renounce_v themselves_o and_o their_o own_o merit_n and_o rest_v only_o upon_o his_o righteousness_n by_o faith_n for_o their_o justification_n &_o also_o upon_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o death_n for_o the_o pardon_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o for_o the_o salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n for_o his_o promise_n of_o grace_n and_o mercy_n be_v make_v to_o such_o as_o sigh_v and_o mourn_v for_o their_o transgression_n now_o examine_v thy_o condition_n with_o a_o faithful_a heart_n be_v thou_o a_o malefactor_n and_o a_o grievous_a sinner_n against_o god_n do_v the_o guilt_n of_o thy_o sin_n press_v heavy_a upon_o thou_o do_v desire_v from_o thy_o heart_n to_o be_v ease_v of_o that_o burden_n be_v the_o remembrance_n of_o they_o bitter_a unto_o thou_o though_o it_o be_v when_o thou_o be_v weak_a and_o faint_a and_o ready_a to_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n then_o look_v up_o to_o christ_n with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n confess_v thy_o sin_n unto_o he_o with_o a_o penitent_a heart_n and_o if_o thy_o ear_n be_v spiritual_o open_v thou_o will_v then_o hear_v a_o gracious_a and_o merciful_a answer_n from_o he_o to_o thy_o petition_n and_o if_o thou_o will_v diligent_o search_v the_o scripture_n thou_o will_v find_v some_o promise_n of_o grace_n which_o will_v suit_v with_o thy_o condition_n that_o christ_n have_v make_v to_o such_o as_o thou_o be_v which_o thou_o must_v apply_v to_o thy_o faint_a soul_n by_o true_a faith_n and_o steadfast_a hope_n that_o it_o belong_v unto_o thou_o then_o rest_n upon_o it_o with_o a_o firm_a confidence_n to_o comfort_v thou_o in_o the_o assurance_n of_o thy_o reconciliation_n unto_o god_n which_o will_v take_v away_o the_o evil_a of_o all_o thy_o sorrow_n and_o the_o terror_n of_o death_n itself_o which_o to_o a_o natural_a man_n be_v most_o uncomfortable_a and_o death_n be_v most_o fearful_a and_o terrible_a to_o such_o as_o see_v the_o hand-writing_n of_o god_n against_o they_o for_o as_o they_o have_v live_v in_o sin_n without_o repentance_n so_o they_o die_v with_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n upon_o their_o soul_n without_o forgiveness_n this_o act_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o conversion_n of_o this_o poor_a sinner_n be_v extraordinary_a and_o it_o be_v a_o special_a work_n of_o mercy_n to_o manifest_v his_o power_n and_o goodness_n to_o he_o even_o at_o the_o last_o hour_n when_o he_o have_v no_o hope_n and_o no_o mean_n of_o his_o salvation_n and_o when_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o cross_n expect_v death_n every_o moment_n and_o also_o it_o be_v to_o show_v that_o he_o be_v no_o respecter_n of_o person_n and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o limit_v to_o time_n or_o mean_n when_o or_o how_o to_o work_v repentance_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o a_o deject_a sinner_n or_o to_o save_v any_o that_o come_v unto_o he_o with_o a_o upright_a heart_n and_o sincere_a affection_n though_o it_o be_v immediate_o before_o they_o go_v hence_o and_o shall_v be_v see_v no_o more_o for_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o this_o man_n have_v ever_o any_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n or_o any_o opportunity_n to_o come_v unto_o he_o or_o any_o mean_n of_o grace_n before_o this_o time_n or_o that_o he_o do_v witting_o and_o wilful_o defer_v the_o time_n of_o his_o salvation_n or_o neglect_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n to_o the_o last_o hour_n or_o desperate_o reserve_v the_o hope_n of_o his_o redemption_n to_o the_o time_n of_o his_o death_n but_o though_o it_o be_v late_o before_o this_o malefactor_n be_v convert_v or_o have_v any_o true_a save_a grace_n wrought_v in_o he_o or_o before_o he_o do_v believe_v in_o christ_n yet_o his_o faith_n be_v true_a 41._o true_a luk._n 23._o 41._o and_o he_o make_v a_o good_a confession_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o do_v justify_v the_o innocency_n of_o christ_n in_o that_o instant_n of_o time_n when_o none_o of_o his_o friend_n dare_v speak_v in_o his_o cause_n and_o his_o apostle_n either_o doubt_v or_o seem_v to_o stagger_v in_o their_o faith_n of_o his_o divinity_n also_o this_o man_n conversion_n be_v at_o such_o a_o time_n as_o that_o he_o can_v neither_o be_v baptize_v nor_o have_v further_a time_n for_o the_o amendment_n of_o his_o sinful_a life_n here_o be_v much_o matter_n of_o spiritual_a comfort_n if_o we_o due_o consider_v how_o powerful_a true_a faith_n be_v to_o prevail_v with_o christ_n in_o all_o our_o trouble_n sorrow_n and_o necessity_n for_o if_o we_o rest_v and_o depend_v upon_o he_o and_o if_o our_o hope_n and_o confidence_n be_v only_o in_o he_o let_v our_o condition_n of_o life_n be_v what_o it_o will_v he_o will_v not_o deceive_v we_o in_o our_o hope_n nor_o leave_v we_o without_o support_n and_o comfort_n also_o if_o he_o find_v faith_n and_o truth_n in_o our_o heart_n he_o will_v deny_v we_o no_o good_a thing_n that_o we_o crave_v of_o he_o be_v it_o never_o so_o great_a or_o beg_v never_o so_o late_o for_o this_o poor_a sinner_n beg_v heavenly_a happiness_n at_o the_o very_a last_o hour_n of_o his_o life_n when_o he_o have_v no_o time_n to_o express_v any_o thankfulness_n for_o so_o great_a a_o blessing_n and_o yet_o he_o have_v his_o request_n grant_v but_o this_o particular_a act_n of_o christ_n mercy_n make_v no_o general_a rule_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n to_o those_o that_o do_v wilful_o defer_v their_o repentance_n and_o turn_n to_o god_n to_o the_o last_o and_o worst_a part_n of_o their_o life_n not_o that_o christ_n be_v not_o always_o ready_a to_o receive_v the_o true_o humble_v and_o repent_v sinner_n but_o because_o late_a repentance_n be_v seldom_o sound_a god_n will_v not_o bestow_v this_o heavenly_a grace_n at_o their_o pleasure_n who_o do_v willing_o neglect_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o lose_v the_o opportunity_n that_o god_n have_v give_v they_o for_o it_o and_o do_v rather_o choose_v to_o continue_v still_o in_o their_o sin_n than_o to_o leave_v and_o forsake_v they_o and_o to_o turn_v to_o the_o lord_n with_o all_o their_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o their_o soul_n we_o can_v but_o daily_o see_v what_o mean_v the_o lord_n use_v to_o bring_v we_o unto_o christ_n and_o to_o make_v we_o get_v a_o holy_a assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n through_o he_o by_o true_a repentance_n his_o law_n do_v show_v we_o the_o deformity_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o what_o we_o have_v just_o deserve_v thereby_o which_o be_v a_o forcible_a mean_n to_o drive_v we_o unto_o christ_n by_o he_o to_o have_v redemption_n from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n the_o sense_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o the_o anguish_n of_o our_o spirit_n for_o they_o be_v strong_a motive_n to_o make_v we_o seek_v to_o our_o crucify_a redeemer_n that_o they_o may_v be_v wash_v away_o in_o his_o blood_n which_o he_o shed_v upon_o the_o cross_n also_o the_o smart_n of_o his_o rod_n in_o our_o trouble_n sorrow_n and_o affliction_n be_v special_a mean_n which_o god_n be_v please_v to_o use_v to_o bring_v we_o to_o repentance_n but_o special_o if_o we_o find_v by_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o visitation_n that_o it_o be_v for_o some_o particular_a sin_n which_o we_o have_v commit_v we_o ought_v then_o speedy_o to_o repent_v of_o they_o and_o to_o seek_v after_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o apply_v it_o to_o ourselves_o by_o faith_n that_o the_o guilt_n of_o such_o sin_n may_v not_o cleave_v to_o our_o soul_n and_o conscience_n but_o that_o those_o spiritual_a wound_n which_o they_o have_v make_v in_o we_o may_v be_v quick_o heal_v before_o they_o come_v to_o putrid_a sore_n and_o ulcer_n and_o we_o may_v have_v a_o true_a assurance_n hereof_o by_o our_o repentance_n if_o repentance_n be_v true_o wrought_v in_o we_o there_o will_v be_v such_o a_o holy_a change_n in_o all_o the_o faculty_n of_o our_o soul_n in_o all_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o in_o all_o the_o part_n of_o our_o body_n that_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n and_o the_o sinful_a lust_n of_o our_o flesh_n will_v be_v mortify_v and_o
the_o power_n of_o sin_n will_v be_v kill_v in_o we_o that_o by_o the_o sanctify_a grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o may_v be_v raise_v up_o to_o newness_n of_o life_n if_o we_o do_v serious_o consider_v these_o thing_n we_o shall_v not_o keep_v at_o so_o far_o a_o distance_n from_o piety_n and_o virtue_n and_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v such_o stranger_n to_o a_o christian_a life_n and_o conversation_n but_o we_o will_v use_v all_o mean_n to_o get_v into_o near_a society_n with_o christ_n by_o true_a save_a faith_n and_o by_o heavenly_a contemplation_n that_o the_o spiritual_a dew_n of_o his_o heavenly_a grace_n may_v distil_v into_o our_o heart_n to_o sanctify_v we_o throughout_o both_o in_o soul_n and_o in_o body_n that_o in_o christ_n we_o may_v be_v make_v new_a creature_n to_o this_o end_n we_o must_v endeavour_v to_o keep_v our_o faith_n still_o in_o action_n and_o continual_o to_o use_v it_o upon_o all_o occasion_n and_o in_o every_o condition_n of_o life_n for_o thereby_o we_o shall_v draw_v strength_n and_o power_n from_o christ_n to_o carry_v we_o on_o through_o all_o temptation_n and_o trial_n and_o to_o support_v and_o comfort_v we_o in_o all_o sorrow_n and_o tribulation_n it_o will_v purify_v our_o heart_n from_o dead_a work_n and_o suffer_v no_o sin_n to_o continue_v with_o we_o without_o repentance_n to_o hinder_v the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n this_o rare_a example_n of_o the_o goodness_n and_o mercy_n of_o christ_n to_o this_o believe_a thief_n may_v keep_v we_o from_o despair_n because_o 22._o because_o ezech._n 18_o 21_o 22._o there_o be_v mercy_n for_o a_o sinful_a soul_n if_o at_o any_o time_n he_o do_v true_o repent_v and_o turn_v to_o the_o lord_n with_o a_o full_a intent_n and_o purpose_n of_o will_n to_o reform_v his_o evil_n it_o do_v also_o teach_v we_o not_o to_o be_v secure_a or_o careless_a of_o our_o salvation_n for_o it_o be_v extreme_o dangerous_a to_o loose_v any_o opportutunity_n of_o grace_n that_o god_n shall_v give_v we_o or_o to_o take_v so_o much_o liberty_n to_o sin_n as_o to_o forget_v to_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n in_o time_n for_o we_o must_v give_v a_o account_n at_o the_o last_o day_n of_o all_o that_o we_o have_v do_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o our_o condition_n then_o will_v be_v most_o miserable_a if_o our_o reckon_n be_v not_o make_v perfect_a in_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n while_o we_o live_v here_o upon_o earth_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o great_a punishment_n in_o this_o life_n to_o have_v no_o sense_n of_o our_o spiritual_a misery_n and_o not_o to_o fear_v or_o remember_v the_o dreadful_a day_n of_o judgement_n also_o this_o consideration_n shall_v keep_v we_o from_o rash_a judgement_n and_o censure_v of_o any_o man_n condition_n though_o he_o be_v a_o notorious_a sinner_n for_o god_n can_v give_v he_o grace_n to_o repent_v when_o he_o please_v as_o this_o one_o example_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o christ_n to_o this_o penitent_a sinner_n may_v keep_v we_o from_o despair_n from_o security_n and_o from_o rash_a judge_v of_o other_o so_o let_v it_o keep_v we_o from_o presume_v upon_o sin_n in_o hope_n of_o pardon_n we_o do_v wilful_o delay_v our_o repentance_n from_o day_n unto_o day_n and_o so_o continue_v impenitent_a to_o the_o last_o part_n of_o our_o life_n because_o this_o man_n have_v all_o his_o sin_n forgive_v even_o in_o a_o moment_n and_o be_v receive_v to_o mercy_n at_o the_o last_o hour_n for_o god_n may_v just_o deny_v we_o mercy_n if_o we_o refuse_v grace_n when_o the_o mean_n be_v offer_v to_o we_o so_o likewise_o let_v it_o keep_v we_o from_o presume_v upon_o repentance_n because_o it_o be_v not_o in_o our_o power_n to_o repent_v when_o we_o will_n this_o heavenly_a grace_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o it_o be_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o faith_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v work_v in_o we_o if_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o his_o holy_a inspiration_n or_o to_o make_v the_o right_a use_n of_o such_o mean_n as_o he_o be_v please_v to_o use_v to_o make_v we_o willing_a to_o seek_v unto_o he_o for_o it_o for_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v not_o work_v it_o in_o we_o we_o can_v have_v no_o hope_n ever_o to_o obtain_v it_o now_o consider_v the_o strength_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v in_o this_o poor_a sinner_n he_o give_v the_o high_a title_n of_o honour_n to_o christ_n when_o he_o we_o be_v scornful_o mock_v and_o in_o a_o most_o contemptible_a condition_n to_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o man_n he_o do_v embrace_v he_o and_o vindicate_v his_o honour_n when_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o cross_n he_o do_v believe_v that_o heaven_n be_v his_o kingdom_n though_o he_o be_v now_o revile_v and_o despise_v of_o all_o man_n and_o that_o he_o have_v the_o dispose_n of_o all_o honour_n and_o preferment_n in_o that_o kingdom_n which_o make_v he_o pray_v unto_o he_o lord_n remember_v i_o when_o thou_o come_v into_o thy_o kingdom_n also_o his_o heart_n be_v touch_v with_o a_o sensible_a feel_n of_o his_o sin_n he_o make_v a_o pious_a confession_n of_o they_o and_o therefore_o he_o do_v pray_v for_o mercy_n out_o of_o a_o true_a sense_n of_o his_o misery_n if_o we_o can_v show_v the_o faith_n of_o this_o penitent_a thief_n though_o our_o life_n have_v be_v as_o vicious_a as_o he_o be_v and_o though_o we_o turn_v to_o christ_n late_o as_o he_o do_v yet_o we_o may_v have_v good_a hope_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o we_o may_v comfortable_o expect_v his_o felicity_n for_o christ_n will_v return_v the_o like_a gracious_a answer_n to_o our_o prayer_n and_o the_o like_a promise_n of_o future_a happiness_n but_o what_o faith_n can_v we_o show_v if_o we_o still_o dishonour_v christ_n with_o our_o word_n and_o work_n how_o can_v we_o trust_v in_o he_o if_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o all_o regal_a power_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n be_v give_v unto_o he_o and_o how_o can_v we_o hope_v for_o future_a blessedness_n from_o he_o if_o we_o be_v not_o confident_a that_o he_o be_v the_o disposer_n of_o all_o the_o glorious_a mansion_n that_o be_v in_o heaven_n what_o godly_a sorrow_n have_v we_o for_o our_o sin_n if_o we_o still_o go_v on_o in_o a_o presumptuous_a way_n of_o sin_v and_o what_o hope_n be_v there_o of_o true_a repentance_n if_o we_o still_o cherish_v &_o foster_v our_o sin_n in_o our_o bosom_n if_o our_o faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v no_o better_o than_o thus_o christ_n will_v not_o hear_v our_o prayer_n nor_o grant_v our_o request_n wherefore_o let_v not_o the_o devil_n delude_v thou_o with_o security_n or_o presumption_n lest_o he_o bring_v thou_o to_o perdition_n for_o many_o have_v perish_v with_o the_o shadow_n of_o this_o deceitful_a hope_n look_v well_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o thy_o faith_n that_o it_o be_v well_o ground_v upon_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o those_o excellency_n that_o be_v in_o he_o that_o thou_o may_v firm_o rest_v upon_o he_o in_o all_o troublesome_a and_o dangerous_a time_n but_o chief_o for_o the_o redemption_n of_o thy_o soul_n neglect_v not_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o defer_v not_o thy_o repentance_n for_o god_n hate_v such_o as_o upon_o confidence_n of_o repentance_n in_o their_o old_a age_n do_v presume_v to_o sin_v the_o mo●e_n free_o as_o if_o god_n do_v not_o know_v the_o deceit_n and_o hypocrisy_n that_o be_v in_o their_o heart_n 20_o heart_n deut._n 29._o 19_o 20_o if_o thou_o do_v flatter_v thyself_o in_o thy_o wickedness_n and_o do_v bless_v thyself_o in_o thy_o heart_n say_v i_o shall_v have_v peace_n though_o i_o walk_v in_o the_o imagination_n of_o my_o heart_n to_o add_v drankenes_n to_o thirst_n then_o know_v that_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o spare_v thou_o but_o then_o the_o anger_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o his_o jealousy_n shall_v smoke_v against_o thou_o and_o all_o the_o curse_n that_o be_v write_v in_o his_o book_n shall_v lie_v upon_o thou_o and_o the_o lord_n shall_v blot_v out_o thy_o name_n from_o under_o heaven_n consider_v further_o how_o much_o this_o penitent_a sinner_n be_v humble_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o of_o his_o unworthiness_n and_o also_o how_o bountiful_a and_o good_a christ_n be_v to_o he_o for_o he_o dare_v not_o presume_v to_o beg_v any_o inheritance_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n but_o only_o some_o remembrance_n of_o he_o when_o he_o come_v into_o his_o kingdom_n but_o christ_n do_v grant_v he_o a_o present_a possession_n of_o his_o kingdom_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o to_o day_n thou_o shall_v be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n this_o paradise_n be_v the_o place_n of_o blessedness_n where_o all_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v until_o the_o general_a
do_v we_o hope_v for_o no_o great_a felicity_n than_o what_o we_o now_o enjoy_v we_o h●ve_v no_o abide_v place_n here_o but_o we_o be_v subject_a to_o change_v every_o moment_n and_o upon_o every_o small_a occasion_n 15._o occasion_n 1_o chro._n 29_o 15._o we_o be_v stranger_n and_o sojourner_n here_o our_o day_n on_o earth_n be_v as_o a_o shadow_n and_o there_o be_v none_o abide_v our_o mansion_n house_n where_o we_o must_v dwell_v for_o ever_o be_v in_o heaven_n which_o christ_n our_o saviour_n have_v prepare_v for_o we_o to_o draw_v our_o mind_n from_o all_o earthly_a delight_n which_o be_v fade_a and_o transitory_a and_o always_o mix_v and_o embitter_v with_o some_o sorrow_n and_o vexation_n that_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n may_v be_v inflame_v to_o enjoy_v that_o celestial_a happiness_n where_o we_o shall_v be_v establish_v and_o confirm_v in_o perfect_a holiness_n for_o ever_o and_o where_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v the_o perfection_n of_o all_o blessedness_n for_o evermore_o wherefore_o 2._o wherefore_o heb._n 12._o 2._o look_v unto_o jesus_n the_o author_n and_o finisher_n of_o our_o faith_n who_o for_o the_o joy_n that_o be_v set_v before_o he_o endure_v the_o cross_n despise_v the_o shame_n and_o be_v set_v down_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n i2_n god_n 2_o tim._n 2._o i2_n if_o we_o suffer_v with_o christ_n we_o shall_v also_o reign_v with_o he_o if_o we_o die_v with_o he_o we_o shall_v also_o live_v with_o he_o if_o we_o be_v bury_v with_o he_o we_o shall_v rise_v with_o he_o and_o if_o we_o partake_v with_o he_o in_o his_o humiliation_n we_o shall_v also_o partake_v with_o he_o in_o his_o exaltation_n for_o the_o member_n must_v be_v make_v conformable_a to_o the_o head_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n we_o come_v now_o to_o the_o exaltation_n of_o our_o bless_a redeemer_n for_o though_o he_o suffer_v his_o enemy_n to_o tyrannize_v over_o he_o at_o their_o pleasure_n and_o to_o put_v he_o to_o a_o most_o cruel_a and_o shameful_a death_n upon_o the_o cross_n because_o it_o be_v his_o heavenly_a father_n will_v it_o shall_v be_v so_o yet_o he_o rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n by_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o his_o deity_n and_o clothe_v himself_o with_o the_o glorious_a robe_n of_o immortality_n triumph_v over_o all_o his_o enemy_n both_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a the_o truth_n of_o his_o resurrection_n 24._o a_o luk._n 24._o do_v first_o appear_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o two_o angel_n to_o the_o woman_n that_o come_v the_o three_o day_n to_o his_o sepulchre_n to_o embalm_v his_o body_n 20._o body_n john_n 20._o then_o he_o appear_v to_o mary_n and_o to_o his_o disciple_n at_o several_a time_n also_o to_o five_o hundred_o brethren_n at_o once_o and_o he_o converse_v with_o his_o disciple_n forty_o day_n upon_o earth_n before_o he_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n many_o saint_n that_o sleep_v be_v raise_v out_o of_o their_o grave_n with_o he_o who_o also_o appear_v to_o many_o in_o the_o holy_a city_n and_o probable_o ascend_v up_o with_o he_o into_o heaven_n so_o that_o we_o may_v safe_o build_v our_o faith_n upon_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o resurrection_n which_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n that_o we_o must_v believe_v for_o the_o well_o ground_v of_o our_o hope_n that_o our_o body_n shall_v also_o rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a with_o song_n of_o rejoice_v and_o triumph_n here_o be_v matter_n of_o exceed_v great_a comfort_n to_o our_o soul_n for_o our_o heart_n to_o meditate_v upon_o if_o we_o do_v steadfast_o believe_v that_o jesus_n christ_n our_o bless_a saviour_n be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a first_o we_o may_v be_v true_o persuade_v hereby_o that_o he_o have_v full_o satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o that_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n be_v take_v away_o from_o our_o soul_n and_o nail_v to_o his_o cross_n so_o that_o if_o god_n look_v upon_o our_o sin_n there_o he_o will_v also_o see_v the_o precious_a blood_n of_o his_o dear_a son_n that_o be_v spill_v for_o they_o second_o we_o may_v firm_o believe_v that_o christ_n by_o his_o resurrection_n have_v get_v the_o victory_n and_o conquest_n over_o sin_n death_n hell_n and_o the_o devil_n 18_o devil_n john_n 10._o 18_o for_o as_o he_o have_v power_n to_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n so_o he_o have_v power_n to_o take_v it_o up_o again_o christ_n have_v likewise_o take_v away_o the_o strength_n of_o sin_n and_o have_v pull_v out_o the_o sting_n of_o death_n in_o that_o he_o have_v fulfil_v all_o righteousness_n and_o full_o satisfy_v the_o penalty_n of_o the_o law_n 56._o law_n 1_o cor._n 15._o 56._o for_o the_o sting_n of_o death_n be_v sin_n and_o the_o strength_n of_o sin_n be_v the_o law_n wherefore_o we_o may_v now_o draw_v virtue_n and_o grace_n from_o christ_n to_o overpower_v all_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n 1._o nature_n eph._n 2._o 1._o and_o though_o we_o be_v dead_a in_o trespass_n and_o sin_n yet_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o resurrection_n he_o will_v quicken_v we_o and_o raise_v we_o up_o out_o of_o the_o grave_n of_o sin_n and_o will_v give_v we_o a_o spiritual_a life_n to_o live_v the_o life_n of_o grace_n to_o he_o here_o that_o we_o may_v live_v the_o life_n of_o glory_n with_o he_o hereafter_o for_o ever_o why_o then_o shall_v we_o fear_v death_n that_o have_v no_o sting_n to_o wound_v we_o why_o shall_v we_o not_o smile_v upon_o it_o see_v christ_n have_v sanctify_v it_o to_o we_o why_o shall_v we_o fear_v the_o devil_n with_o a_o servile_a fear_n see_v christ_n have_v redeem_v we_o out_o of_o his_o bondage_n his_o malice_n may_v molest_v and_o trouble_v we_o if_o we_o be_v not_o well_o arm_v with_o faith_n but_o christ_n have_v weaken_v his_o power_n below_o our_o strength_n when_o our_o bodieslye_o in_o the_o dust_n our_o soul_n will_v be_v out_o of_o the_o devil_n reach_v for_o christ_n will_v take_v they_o up_o to_o himself_o into_o the_o paradise_n of_o god_n where_o the_o devil_n can_v come_v for_o he_o be_v cast_v down_o into_o utter_a darkness_n he_o may_v be_v permit_v to_o tempt_v or_o afflict_v we_o while_o we_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n but_o christ_n who_o we_o serve_v will_v not_o suffer_v he_o to_o prevail_v against_o we_o three_o see_v christ_n our_o head_n be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a we_o also_o that_o be_v his_o member_n must_v rise_v again_o at_o the_o last_o day_n for_o the_o head_n will_v draw_v all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o body_n with_o it_o christ_n have_v redeem_v our_o body_n from_o the_o grave_n as_o well_o as_o our_o soul_n from_o death_n if_o therefore_o we_o be_v not_o raise_v again_o out_o of_o the_o grave_n our_o redemption_n be_v not_o perfect_o wrought_v also_o if_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o resurrection_n of_o our_o body_n and_o if_o death_n have_v power_n to_o keep_v they_o still_o in_o the_o grave_n than_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n be_v not_o firm_a and_o our_o faith_n be_v not_o able_a to_o keep_v we_o close_o unto_o he_o and_o our_o hope_n be_v not_o steadfast_a but_o death_n have_v not_o this_o power_n the_o grave_n will_v open_v and_o deliver_v up_o their_o dead_a and_o our_o body_n shall_v rise_v again_o to_o enjoy_v that_o unconceivable_a happiness_n with_o our_o soul_n of_o the_o beatifical_a vision_n of_o god_n and_o to_o be_v for_o ever_o with_o christ_n our_o redeemer_n because_o christ_n our_o head_n be_v rise_v last_o our_o chief_a comfort_n depend_v upon_o our_o resurrection_n to_o glory_n for_o in_o this_o life_n we_o find_v nothing_o but_o labour_n and_o travel_n sorrow_n and_o trouble_n vexation_n and_o anguish_n of_o spirit_n our_o hope_n of_o future_a rest_n and_o peace_n of_o joy_n and_o comfort_n happiness_n and_o glory_n do_v sweeten_v all_o our_o affliction_n here_o and_o make_v we_o bear_v they_o content_o and_o cheerful_o for_o as_o david_n say_v 11._o say_v psal_n 58._o 11._o very_o there_o be_v a_o reward_n for_o the_o righteous_a and_o this_o reward_n be_v in_o heaven_n now_o if_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a our_o hope_n be_v vain_a our_o comfort_n will_v deceive_v we_o and_o our_o life_n be_v most_o miserable_a of_o all_o man_n according_a to_o this_o of_o paul_n 15._o paul_n 1_o cor._n 15._o 15._o if_o in_o this_o life_n only_o we_o have_v hope_n in_o christ_n we_o be_v of_o all_o man_n most_o miserable_a for_o we_o shall_v never_o enjoy_v this_o reward_n which_o god_n have_v promise_v but_o our_o faith_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o sure_a promise_n of_o god_n which_o can_v deceive_v we_o concern_v the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o body_n unto_o glory_n which_o will_v yield_v we_o unspeakable_a consolation_n when_o we_o serious_o meditate_v upon_o it_o wherefore_o now_o raise_v